AMATEUR XXX STORIES

-

ALPHABETICAL SEX STORY LISTINGS:

A - B - C - D - E - F - G - H - I - J - K - L - M - N - O - P - Q - R - S - T - U - V - W - X - Y - Z

TPCL ALL extreme angle that shaped her calves

THE USUAL WARNINGS:

This is a work of fiction by a twisted mind. If you are

offended by graphic descriptions of natural and/or

unnatural sexual acts, if you are underage, or if this type

of material is illegal where you are, don't read any

further.

This is a fantasy. You will have to loosen your clench on

reality a little when you read it. This is a tale in which

physical acts and human responses are not limited to, nor

necessarily based in, reality. Some acts and responses in

this story may be physically impossible and/or

physiologically improbable.

Also, as is the case with most of the stories in this

newsgroup, all the women in this story are beautiful;

gorgeous, even. Gravity has not caused their breasts to

droop nor have creased wrinkles their unblemished faces.

The men (the leading men, at least) are hung like bulls.

They can get it up and keep it up often and at will. In

this special little fantasyland, there are no STDs, morals,

or unwanted pregnancies; and guilt is a four-letter word.

But most important of all, no amount of strength of

character, courage of convictions or moral beliefs stands a

chance against an erotic stimulus. This can be as benign

as an accidental glimpse of a bared ankle or as stimulating

as a whipping on the genitals.

For those of you who didn’t understand the preceding

statements, GO AWAY!

This story is intended for the salacious entertainment of

consenting adults. Do not try to do any of the things

described in this story. You will injure yourself or your

partner. Or be arrested, or shot by her father....

If you are under 18 years of age, GO AWAY! This story will

burn your eyeballs and fry your brain.

If material of a strong sexual nature is prohibited where

you are, GO AWAY!

By continuing, the reader accepts all responsibility for

any disgust, revulsion, jail sentences, or pleasure that

result from reading this story. If you don’t, GO AWAY!

You have been warned!

If you enjoy this story and feel the urge to post it on a

<free> site, at least give me (NightShade) credit for it.

So, stick your tongue firmly in your cheek and enjoy the

story!....?

NightShade













The President's Club

by NightShade

Chapter 1

first posted 4/97, major revision 12/98

The young wife gazed nervously into the full-length mirror

on the door of her closet. She almost didn’t recognize the

gorgeous creature standing in front of her. So much had

happened to her in the last couple of months. So much

about her life had changed and been turned upside down.

Still, she didn’t think she was there yet, wherever ‘there’

was. She felt like a pupa stuck in mid-metamorphosis. She

wasn’t a caterpillar anymore and not yet a butterfly,

either. She knew that tonight was the next step. She

didn’t know how she knew. She could just feel it. Maybe

it was just because she wanted so badly for something to

happen.

Something would happen tonight, something <had> to happen

tonight to complete her metamorphosis, make her whole. Her

whole being yearned for that to happen. Yet as excited as

she was about tonight, she was even more afraid. God knew

she didn’t have a good track record with her relationships

up to this point in her young life. She pessimistically

wondered how she was going to mess this one up.

As she stared at the emerging butterfly in the mirror, she

thought back on the events leading up to this night. How?

Why?

=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-

Karin's life was a mess. A total mess. But that was

nothing new. It had always been a mess....

She was just 18 years old, and had barely graduated High

School with a D average. The irony that her grade point

average was the same as her bra cup size didn’t escape her.

She thought it was funny. Her teachers would have been

stunned to learn that she not only knew what irony was, but

that she could identify aspects of it in her own life, and

see the humor as well. She wasn't stupid. She was just

easily distracted, bored and terribly insecure, which she

hid from everyone by being aloof. Unfortunately, her body

had encouraged all kinds of distractions from the boys at

her high school.

Karin was tall for a girl, almost 6 feet tall, feminine and

graceful. Her aloofness scared all but the most aggressive

boys and kept them from asking her out. They just didn’t

know how to deal with a female that didn’t pant like a

bitch in heat. They never found out it was an act, a sham.

The ones who did ask her out were treated with icy

coolness. Look but don’t touch. She was a trophy date to

take to the country club or the prom, but never into the

backseat.

Which was surprising, considering how universally horny

teenage boys are and how drop-dead beautiful Karin was.

Her face was regal, more serious than she was. Clear blue

eyes, blonde hair, a long, graceful neck. Smooth, rounded

shoulders tapered into delicate arms, ending in soft

slender fingers.

Her legs drew a lot of attention, especially in Spring and

Summer when she wore shorts. They had been a featured

attraction ever since the sixth grade when she sprouted up.

They were constantly a source of embarrassment to her.

When she sat and innocently crossed them in class, or when

she walked down the hall, they drew unwanted attention to

her. They were endless and the short skirts she wore

emphasized their length and shapeliness.

Her hips flared nicely, but still retained the trimness of

a younger girl. The firm clean lines of her ass cheeks

swayed when she walked down the school hallways, never

failing to bring at least one, if not a chorus of whistles

behind her.

Her breasts, however, were truly amazing. They were huge,

stupendous, but her height made them seem almost

proportionate to her body. Almost. The sensuously rounded

orbs sat high and proud on her broad chest, firm and large,

defying laws of gravity and physics by standing straight

out without support. At their quivering tips were quarter-

sized circles colored a dusky pink with perfectly centered

crinkled red buttons that always seemed to be sticking out

through whatever she was wearing.

Early on, she had been proud of her chesty development

until the girls in her gym class had spited her in their

juvenile envy. The very same girls who had been her ‘best’

friends the year before ostracized her when her tits

ballooned over the summer. She was never invited to any

more parties, sleepovers, nor included in the gossip.

The boys on the other hand, although they pestered her a

lot, mostly just looked, drooled and jacked off. They were

immature and the image she presented to them made them

nervous. Even the quarterback of the football team fumbled

around her. She had been the chief actress in many a high

school fantasy and wet dream but ended up dateless on most

Saturday nights.

When she did date, they went one of two ways. Either the

boys were so overwhelmed with her beauty and nearness that

they creamed their shorts just sitting beside her, or they

would explode at her, and try to rape her. Those who

exploded at her also exploded in their shorts. None of the

immature bastards even tried to kiss her. It they had only

known....

Her home life had not been much better. Her mother drank a

lot, her father fooled around a lot, or at least, that's

what the neighbors said. The times Karin had liked best

were when her mother was unconscious and her father was

‘out of town’. On those nights at least, although she was

alone, neither one of them would beat her or humiliate her.

So it was not surprising that when Mr. Saunders, a wealthy

businessman from the big city, showed an interest in her,

she was drawn to him. He had chanced to see her walking

home from school as he drove through her small town. He

had been looking for a service station. He was so

impressed he decided to stay and look into this statuesque

creature. He was a big man, tall and handsome. She looked

like she would be an ideal set piece for him.

When he approached her, he did so without fear or

nervousness. Not at all like the boys who stammered and

gasped. As she thought back, she figured she must have

fallen in love with him when he introduced himself. He

treated her so kind, and was the perfect gentleman on every

one of their dates. He didn't try to kiss her or have sex

with her or touch her during their whirlwind courtship.

Never once did she sense he had soiled himself. She took

this to be a measure of his self-control. In her short

life, Karen had never met a man like Bill Saunders. Not

because he was a gentleman, intelligent and refined, but

because he was gay.

Bill’s business was in a close-knit industry that demanded

a "normal" family image and he desperately needed a wife.

His initial assessment of Karin was confirmed as he

researched her family and the boring little town: Karin

was the perfect trophy wife. Beautiful and dumb, a girl no

one cared about.

He quietly gave her parents $10,000 cash at their

daughter’s wedding to forget about her. No phone calls, no

letters, no visits, no contact at all. With that much

money for booze, it was guaranteed they wouldn't remember

anything for long.

Bill had insisted that Karin pack up everything that was

hers in her parents house and bring it with her when she

moved to the big city. He wanted no traces of her left

behind, no little articles or knick-knacks to stir long

forgotten memories in her parents minds of their one and

only child.

He needn't have bothered. Her parents had resented her

from her conception. Her striking beauty and aloofness had

only infuriated them more. They resented how plain and

ordinary she made them feel. They accused her of disdain.

Karin was already forgotten before she and her new husband

had left town following the small reception. Her parents

both drank themselves to death within two months. The

local banker, seeking to curry favor with the big city

businessman, contacted Bill about their deaths. Bill

didn’t tell Karin, so she didn't go to the funeral.

The marriage had been six months ago and her brief, 6-month

marriage to the 55-year-old successful businessman was a

total failure. Nothing worked between them. No matter

what she tried, no matter how hard she worked to please

him, she always upset him. She couldn't relate to her

husband’s work or his education. She never thought it

might not be her fault.

The façade of her fairy-tale marriage to the handsome Bill

Saunders had started cracking on their wedding night. He

had complained of a headache, of all things, that first

night. The second night he passed out drunk, something she

was used to. The honeymoon had ended abruptly with a well-

planned emergency in another city. He apologized, but was

sure she would understand.

Other business trips came up and he was away for weeks at a

time. When he was home, he came back from the office late

at night. She had been married for six months and was

still a virgin. To her way of thinking, she had been a

failure as a daughter, she had been a failure in high

school and now she was a failure as a wife.

She even thought she was a failure as a woman. She had

realized her husband was gay early on, but thought she was

the reason for it. At first it was the pool man who only

came to clean the pool when Bill was home. The job always

seemed to take two people, especially the part that took

them into the cabana out behind the pool. It wasn’t until

she needed to turn off the pool filter one day and looked

for the filter equipment in the small outbuilding that she

found there was no reason for them to be in there.

Lately it had been the butler that didn't butler. Her new

home was a big house and she initially appreciated the

gesture from Bill to provide her with some help. She

didn’t think twice about the butler moving into the

quarters off the kitchen. That’s what a butler did. But

this one did more. And less. He was absolutely no help to

her around the house. As time passed, the relationship

between the three of them became tense. The normal roles

of husband and wife were mixed up helter skelter.

Karin became more and more isolated and alone. She had

nowhere to go and no one to turn to. She never went out,

she didn't drive, and she had no friends. She didn't know

anyone but Bill and the household staff. The cook only

spoke Spanish, the gardener was deaf, and the butler, well,

the butler resented her very existence. That had been made

very clear to her two weeks ago.

Two weeks ago, Bill and the "butler", Bruce, had surprised

her as she lay sunning herself by the pool. Bill insisted

that she maintain her youthful appearance and beauty. He

liked her to appear as if they had spent time on the

islands, so she spent as much of her time in the sun as

possible. As his trophy wife, she had the finest clothes

to wear, and, of course, the tiniest bikinis.

That afternoon, as she lay soaking up the last of the day's

light, the two men had quietly sneaked up behind her and

overpowered her. She had been immediately blindfolded. A

thick hand towel had been stuffed, crammed in her mouth by

one of them. Bruce, she thought. Her arms had been pulled

hard behind her back as she lay struggling on her stomach.

Her assailant tied them with a piece of stiff twine or

wire. It was tied tight and cut deeply into her wrists.

There was no love or tenderness in either of the men's

actions.

She had been picked up, thrown over a shoulder, and hauled

like an old rug down into the basement. There, they had

strung her up and proceeded to torment her as only two

mysogenistic men were capable of.

Her hands had been re-tied from behind her back to the

thick pipes running overhead, leaving her feet dangling

about two inches off the floor. As tall as she was, her

feet didn't reach the floor to support her. They had not

bothered to take off her skimpy covering, but merely pushed

the tiny triangles of her bikini top up off her firm tits

and yanked the bottoms down around her thighs. Doing it

that way made her feel more exposed and naked than if she

had been completely nude.

Bruce, the sadistic butler, had started slapping her firm

tits with his hands. He had to reach up to hit her chest,

but he still managed to hit her hard. He was a wimpy,

emasculated, effeminate man and was jealous of Karin's

femininity. He was especially jealous of her natural charm

and beauty and above all, her perfectly rounded tits.

He began to work her tits over, going from slapping them

side to side to using them as a punching bag, hitting them

straight on with his closed fists. Karin screamed into the

towel gag as the blows jarred her body. He was working so

hard that the sweat was running down, staining his silk

pajamas. Sadist that he was, he got excited beating up a

helpless woman. His erection tented the loose-fitting

pants until the tip slipped out between the buttons of the

fly. The short pink organ was highlighted against the

black shiny fabric.

Bill watched as Bruce tormented the stupid country girl

that he had married. That’s essentially how he thought of

the cunt. Too dumb to boil water. But with her folks

gone, he figured he could be a respectable widower in a

year of so. No one would miss the bitch.

Until then, though, he figured he might as well get all the

mileage out of little wifey as he could. This whole

brutality thing had been the butler's idea. It hadn’t

escaped his notice that it had been Bruce’s idea that had

gotten him into this mess with the big Hong Kong bank in

the first place. Now it was the butler's idea to get out

of that trouble with the bank by prostituting his wife to

the bank’s president. All they had to do was to get Karin

to go along with the idea. Bruce had convinced him that

beating the shit out of her was the only way to convince

her to follow through with it even if they weren’t around

to make sure.

Bill watched the barbaric butler beat on Karin a little

longer. He wasn’t sure but he thought he detected a subtle

change in the girl's reactions to the punishing blows. Her

screams had softened to moans and were coming less

frequently, but that could be exhaustion. Her pink nipples

seemed to be puffing up and darkening in hue, but that

could be due to the beating they were taking. He was not

an expert in female sexual responses - he had never had an

interest in it - but he thought he noticed moisture seeping

from between her flailing thighs. That one had him

stumped.

For her part, Karin had been taken by surprise by her

reactions. The blindfold confused her and she couldn’t get

her bearings. She never realized how much she relied on

her sight. She wondered if perhaps they were just playing

a trick on her. Then she thought they were really

kidnappers, until they spoke to one another and she

recognized their voices. Why would her husband want to do

this to her?

The ropes around her wrists had hurt, but there was also

another deeper feeling building insider her she couldn't

quite put her finger on. It was like it was OK what was

happening. It was like security blanket, the feeling that

she was not in control. Whatever happened, she was not

responsible, there was no pressure on her to act in any

particular way. She couldn’t screw this up. It was

comforting in a strange way and she relaxed and let it

happen to her.

She had gone limp as they had lifted her and allowed them

to hoist her over a shoulder. She didn’t resist as they

had strung her from the overhead pipes in the basement.

She had blushed, unnoticed, when her breasts and pussy had

been exposed, but that blush quickly faded as Bruce, she

had guessed correctly, had started slapping and then

punching her in the tits and tummy.

The initial slaps had surprised her and the sudden pain in

her boobs had made her scream. It was the only defense she

had left. The pain had quickly been replaced by

surprisingly intense pleasant feelings that zipped straight

to her cunt. The wonderful tingling had built with each

slap and punch of her tits. Tensed and primed by endless

hours of using her finger as her sole source of pleasure,

the virgin wife was quickly teetering on the edge of a

ripping climax. For the first time in her life, she felt

really alive. She was charged up. Something wonderful was

going to happen, she could feel it building in her sopping

cunt.

Whether Bruce sensed her impending orgasm, or whether he

just got lucky doesn’t matter much, because just as she was

about to free fall over the edge, he punched the

defenseless dangling girl in her relaxed, untrained stomach

with two powerful jabs. The air was forced completely

from her lungs, squelching any possibility of her pending

orgasm. Bill stepped in to stop the raging butler from

doing too much damage to the gasping woman. They did,

after all, have to keep her in relatively good shape for

her ‘date’.

"My turn, Brucie. Why don't you rest a while?"

Bruce was in a blood rage and wasn’t about to quit. All

the frustrations he had had all his life at having a female

mind and a male body were finally coming out. Anger at all

the teasing from the other kids. Anger that this cunt was

his lover’s legal wife. He turned to Bill, whining. “Just

a little longer, Bill. The bitch deserves it."

"No, Bruce. That's not the reason we're here, now, is it?

We can't be selling damaged goods to this client now, can

we?"

The mention of the banker calmed Bruce down. That mean son

of a bitch would make this beating seem like a ballroom

dance lesson. Bruce had worked for the banker up until

last year. The banker had fired him after it was

discovered Bruce had embezzled a lot of money from him.

More than a lot. Too much money for the bank to publicly

admit to, and still keep the confidence of its depositors.

Way too much for the banker to admit to the board of

directors and still keep his job.

Bruce had been well aware of the banker's reputation with

the ladies. The ones he dated always seemed to have

trouble sitting down - or even moving without a gasp of

pain, for that matter - after a ‘date’ with him. After

talking with a couple of them, quietly, of course, Bruce

had discovered that the banker liked to tie up his

unsuspecting victims, then spank and whip them mercilessly.

Bruce had never known a girl to voluntarily go on a second

date with the banker.

Bill was not aware that the banker and Bruce knew each

other. Bill was the rich patsy Bruce was using to pay the

banker back for the money he had stolen. The money that

could be skimmed from the new building loan for the new

manufacturing plant should more than cover his losses. The

rest was just gravy for the banker.

Being the thorough man that he was, the banker researched

all potential relationships before he made a move. Bruce,

the flaming gay, had been forced on the bank by the fucking

liberals and their EEOC policies. He had simply shown up

in his department with the access codes. Those idiots in

Personnel hadn’t even done a resume check. By the time the

money was missing, it was too late to point fingers. It

was his responsibility by then. And he was pissed.

So when he finally did move to get his due, he applied the

screws to both Bill and Bruce. He had them right where he

wanted them. He had been quietly pressing Bruce to get his

money back, and then began blackmailing Bill when he found

out he was gay, and was that Bruce was living with him.

Butler, my ass...

He had seen Karin by the pool on one of his rare visits to

Bill's mansion. That day he had been there to pick up a

late payment, and his mood was foul. He had walked by the

huge windows that overlooked the pool, automatically

glanced out, a flash of color catching his attention. He

nearly stumbled over a chair as he had done a double take

at the sight of the beautiful near-naked creature lying

there. His research had not picked up this piece of

information. His eyes had glazed over, his heart beat like

a trip hammer and his cock swelled up like a young bull in

mating season. He let the two faggots know of a way to

cancel the rest of the debt. Just one weekend with the

girl. Longer, if it worked out.

The two gay lovers couldn't agree fast enough to give him

Karin. Any way he wanted her. Bill didn’t mention that

she was his wife, but it wouldn’t have mattered to the

banker. They made arrangements for three weeks hence. She

would be moved to an isolated apartment, unprotected, no

alarms and no neighbors. Bill smiled coldly as he thought

of the perfect location. All they had to do was get her to

cooperate for the first part of the date.

Bruce thought that with the bitch out of the way and out of

the house, he could consolidate his position with this rich

businessman. For his part, Bill felt he had to protect his

business at all costs. Karin, to him, was simply an asset

he was finally able to put to use. The banker had

threatened to expose him to his more pious colleagues, and

he couldn't let that happen. They would drum him out of

business within a month. They wouldn’t even need proof.

Just the rumor. God knows he’d ruined one of his more

pesky competitors that way and had passed on his share of

gossip that he was sure had no basis in truth. He was in a

precarious position, and he knew it. Karin was a write-

off. So was Bruce, as soon as this was finished.

So they ended up in the basement, with Bruce using Karin as

a punching bag to get her to agree to the deal.

Bill stepped up to the gasping girl. Tears leaked out

below the blindfold and streaked down her flushed cheeks.

Reaching out with both hands, he captured a bruised swollen

nipple between each thumb and forefinger. Somewhat

distastefully, he rolled them around, stimulated the hard

buttons until they puffed up even larger.

"Karin, I want you to listen very carefully. I need you to

do something for me. It's very important. If you don't

agree to do it, I'm afraid that I'm going to have to let

Bruce hit you some more until you do. Do you understand

me?"

Karin fearfully nodded her head in the direction of the

voice. She wasn’t afraid of what Bruce might do to her.

She was afraid, because this was the most words he had

spoken to her since the day they were married. And he was

talking to her as if she were an adult, too. If it was

that important, she just knew she would mess it up.

"I want you to escort a friend of mine to a dance at a

convention. He is a very important man and you will be

nice to him. OK?"

Again she nodded, puzzled. All this for a date?

Bill twisted her nipples viciously, threatening to rip them

off.

"I mean very nice, bitch. Do you understand what I mean?

You will do anything he wants, right? Anything!"

The tight twisting of her nipples sent Karin over the edge

she had been close to before the wind was knocked out of

her. Skyrockets of light burst in her head and her cunt

gushed slippery fluids down her long tanned thighs. She

whipped her head back and forth in her ecstasy, screaming

into the towel. This was better than her fingers by a long

ways.

"Right, bitch?" Bill demanded again, emphasizing the

question with another sadistic twist.

Coming down from her orgasm, Karin weakly nodded her

agreement.

"What a fucking whore!" muttered Bruce, standing off to one

side. "A fucking good-for-nothing cunt!" He had wanted

her to resist. He had dreamed of her resisting, ever since

Bill had agreed to this bizarre technique.

Turning to Bill, he pleaded, "Let me give her some more,

just to make sure she understands. Please?"

"No," came the answer.

Bill looked at the hanging girl. He noticed the excessive

wetness between her thighs and poked an exploratory finger

up into her pussy.

Karin jerked spastically at the unaccustomed intrusion by

someone else’s finger.

His manicured finger slithered between her slick puffy lips

and entered her virginal tunnel. Part way in, the tip

encountered a tough membrane.

A look of surprise crossed his face, followed quickly by

outright rage.

"You BITCH!" he exploded, "You're still a fucking VIRGIN!

I figured you would have at least gotten rid of it in high

school. Shit! You're too fucking stupid to have even done

that right"

He looked around in a blind rage, seeking something,

anything, to show her how incredibly worthless she was.

Spying the perfect object, he grinned wickedly. It was

just what he wanted. He stepped over to the cleaning

closet and pulled out a soiled, stinking toilet plunger.

Pulling a condom from the pocket of his open robe, he

ripped opened the foil and slipped it onto the dirty wooden

handle.

Bruce watched the proceedings with excited bright eyes, his

stubby hardon bouncing with each beat of his rapidly

beating heart. This was going to be even better than he

had dared hope. He quivered with anticipation, his hand

lost in the folds of his pajamas as he stroked his puny

dick.

Bill strode back over to his suspended wife. He set the

plunger on the floor next to her. Reaching up he grabbed

the bottoms of her bikini and jerked the useless fabric off

her thighs.

"Bruce, hold her legs apart. We've got a block in the

plumbing and a helper to help," he said maliciously.

Bruce quickly moved behind the dazed girl and squatted

down. He wanted to see this close up. This should finish

the bitch. Raped by the plumber’s helper. He grabbed an

ankle in each hand and spread them as wide as he could.

Karin was now struggling as best she could, but she was

tired. She had been hanging for almost 30 minutes and her

shoulders and arms were sore from the strain. Each weak

kick of her legs jerked her stressed joints painfully. It

couldn’t be good what they had planned. She had never

heard such an evil tone, from anyone, much less her

husband. She suddenly realized she didn’t really know this

man. She cried out fearfully, but it was too late. Her

strength was sapped.

Bruce didn't have too difficult a job to spread her shapely

legs and expose the target to Bill's advancing plunger. He

gripped her slim ankles tighter than he needed to, leaving

angry red marks on them.

Karin was not aware that she was about to be mechanically

violated. She had heard the two men talking. She figured

out that Bill was going to finally make her a woman. If it

hadn’t been for his anger and tone of voice, she would have

been excited about it because she had waited for six months

for him to exercise his conjugal rights. And now he was.

She was unprepared for the sudden jab of the long hard

handle into her cunt. The unlubricated condom irritated

the sensitive tender skin in her cunt. After advancing

about two inches, the blunted head hit her hymen. She

screamed into the thick towel gagging her. The pain was

blinding, different than before. This just fucking hurt.

Bill nodded silently to Bruce, who tightened his grip on

her ankles. With a fierce hateful yell and a twisting

lunge, Bill shoved the handle forcefully into Karin's

virgin tunnel, forcing the handle of the plunger past the

thin membrane barrier. It parted with an almost audible

tearing sound.

Karin screamed into the gag in horror, almost freeing her

legs from the vicious grasp. White hot flashes coursed

through her body. Searing, horrible pain. This was awful.

The handle continued in until the serial numbers on the

condom covering the top of it were hidden in her soft pussy

hairs. Bill yanked the handle out, then jabbed the handle

in, then out, then in and out twice more. Satisfied that

the disgusting unused conjugal passage was now clear, and

his precious reputation protected, he set the toilet

plunger down carefully on the basement floor. He wiped his

shit covered hands on her heaving tits.

Bruce and Bill untied Karin's hands and let her drop

heavily to the floor. Her rubbery legs wouldn’t support

her. They left her lying there to come to by herself.

Bill also left the bloody rubber on the handle of the

stinking plunger. He wanted that bloody post to be the

first thing that she saw. He hoped she realized it for

what it was - her first lover.

Chapter 2

That had been two weeks ago.

Karin had crawled painfully up the stairs out of the

basement, then up more stairs to her room. She hurt all

over. She was confused. The next day, she was efficiently

moved to a small apartment in one of the company’s

commercial warehouses downtown. Not an excess word was

exchanged between the three of them. Bill had the cook had

come in to her room early in the morning and pack a few of

her things while she was in the shower. By the time she

made her way out of the bathroom, there was a pair of

shorts and a halter-top laid out on the bed. She dressed

herself in those and she left the mansion in a taxi. She

wasn’t offered any breakfast.

The building they moved her into was in one of the older

industrial sections of town. The apartment had it's own

separate entrance via the parking garage. Originally it

had been designed to house an on-site General Manager of a

factory. Built in the twenties or thirties, it was big and

solid. One of the previous owners had sealed off and

isolated from the work area. The factory was long since

abandoned, and the building was now used as an overflow

storehouse for raw materials. The inside of the warehouse

was gritty with dirt, vermin and disuse. The apartment,

although separate, had been vacant for a long time and some

of the grime of the warehouse filtered into it. It was

dirty, smelly, and in the middle of nowhere. As far as she

knew, Bill had intended this to be an insult to her.

She identified with the little apartment, however. It felt

like she and it belonged together.

Just before she had closed the door to the taxi, the cook

had shoved an envelope into her hands. She sat down and

read the short, terse note inside. She learned that Bill

had provided her a bank account. Each week, money would be

deposited into the account automatically, provided she

'behaved herself.' Food would be delivered by a ‘local’

store, all she had to do was call and order. There were

directions for her to go shopping for a suitable dress at a

fancy boutique the next week.

Bill would have been astonished had he seen his beaten

wife’s expression. Karin was literally astonished at her

new wealth and the wonderful apartment. She had more money

now than she ever had before, and she was happy to be alone

on her own. She sat for a long time on the dirty couch,

hugging herself, laughing joyously at her freedom.

She immediately threw herself into various diversions.

Part of the first day was spent examining the rooms,

determining what needed to be done to fix up the old

apartment. There was surprisingly little to do, other than

cleaning. It had apparently been a luxury apartment at one

time with an extra-large bath, a beautiful rooftop patio

with a hot tub, and good quality solid furniture. But that

had been several years ago, as was obvious from the out of

date fabric and fashion of the furnishings.

Karin had plunged into what she knew best. Hell, it was

all she knew how to do. Housework. She had swept and

cleaned and scrubbed, put up new drapes. dusted and swept

and mopped the floors. The activity helped keep her mind

occupied. For about a day and a half. Then she set about

re-arranging the furniture to her liking.

During the re-arranging process, she discovered that Bill

had lived in the apartment, long ago, when he was just

starting out. This must have been one of the first

buildings to house his company’s manufacturing plant. She

discovered a section of a diary kept by a much younger

Bill. The bound notebook had been wedged down behind a

section of a bookcase and the wall. It had apparently

fallen down and was forgotten when he moved out. She

didn’t know at first what it was and was about to toss it

out when a clipping from an old newspaper fluttered to the

ground.

Picking up the clipping, she read it. Her interest piqued,

she leafed through the book, looking for other information.

What she found stunned her. The diary picked up in the

middle of an involved plot, as this was just one section of

a multi-volume diary. The more she read, the more familiar

names she read, names she had heard in the last six months.

They were the names of Bill’s competitors and clients.

Some were unfamiliar. But she got the gist of it. In

Bill’s own writing were detailed plots he had made to

destroy one of his rivals. As far as she could see, the

only thing the rival had done was to be an honest

businessman. There were several sneering passages about

how goody-goody the bastard was.

At first, she thought the plotting had just been theories,

mock rage stuff. Then, as she read the daily entries, the

chilling story unfolded. It told how, after careful

planning, Bill had set in motion a fabrication of lies and

half-truths that had wiped the man out. The passages

became savage, describing the depths to which the man had

fallen. Bill described how the man had come to him, not

knowing it had been Bill who had planned and started the

whole thing. Bill described how he had ‘helped’ the guy

out – for a price, of course. That price was a partnership

in the failing company.

What chilled Karin to the bone was that the old newspaper

clipping was the story of the gruesome murder-suicide of

the broken man and his wife. A couple of the passages in

the diary led her to believe it had not been a voluntary

suicide, but that someone, namely Bill, had been there to

help him out of his misery. The same misery Bill had put

him in.

The thought that Bill was that calculating, that cold, that

unfeeling hit her like a hammer. It suddenly became very

clear to her that she had to grow up, take charge of her

life. Now, this didn’t happen like a bolt of lightning

from the sky, but the mental shift was there. Being alone

and on her own for the first time helped. But she also

realized that she was totally unprepared for living in a

cruel world.

Such deep thoughts were frightening to her. She tried to

keep as busy as she could during the day by exploring the

blocks surrounding the apartment. She would walk for

hours, pushing her body until the soreness from the beating

was indistinguishable from the soreness of the overworked

muscles. Gradually, she healed. She was even able to wear

heavier blouses and shirts over her tenderized breasts.

She had been receiving a lot of cat-calls and wolf whistles

on her walks around the area. Some of the guys were gross,

but a couple of them were cute, too. Although she still

wasn’t comfortable with all the attention blatant

sexuality, she was making tremendous strides in her level

of self-confidence. Besides, she kind of liked turning on

all those men.

She had discovered, drained, cleaned and filled the hot tub

on the terrace, and was pleasantly surprised when it ran

perfectly. It had been an exorbitant luxury when it was

installed 20-25 years ago and it had been built to last.

She enjoyed the hot soothing bubbling water often in the

evenings. It felt so decadent to be naked in the middle of

downtown and outside in the open air. She spent hours

soaking in the bubbling water, letting the soothing

currents soak away the last of her aches and pains. She

kind of zoned out in the hot tub. The cares of the day and

the fears of tomorrow faded away. But eventually she had

to get out of the water. To try to sleep. It seemed to

her that she would lay in bed all night long as her

thoughts raced forwards to her date. She wondered what the

man would be like. What would he ask her to do? Could she

do it? Could she not do it?

Then the itching would start. It was the kind of itch she

couldn't quite scratch. But she tried to and she would

almost succeed. She would then remember those intense

feelings she had felt in the basement at the hands of those

two sadistic brutes. Fresh tears of humiliation would fill

her eyes as she realized just how turned on she had been at

the rough treatment they had given her. Her cheeks would

flame red with her shame, but even embarrassment could not

diminish the rising urgency of her need.

Pushing her shame aside, she focused on trying to feel that

same sexual rush again. Her fingers blurred in between her

legs in frustrated persistence as the itch wouldn't go away

and she couldn't get off. After several frustrating

nights, she started doing things to try to get herself off.

Like pinching her nipples hard. Like Bill had done that

night that had felt soooo goood.

That stimulus worked for a while, but it wasn't enough.

Something was missing. She started to play with some old

cords from the drapes, first twisting them around her legs,

binding them tightly together. The heat she felt in her

sex told her she was on the right track. While her feet

and legs were tied, she fantasized about being totally

controlled, totally restrained. The idea made her hotter

and wetter between her legs.

She tried running the cords through her legs and pulling

the twisted strands up tight against her pussy. She

twisted the ends in her hands and sawed the braided coarse

rope back and forth across her clit. She managed to cum a

couple of times that way, too, but something was still

missing.

These limited excursions led to her attempting full self-

bondage. First she would tie her ankles together and

secure them to the foot of the bed with a short rope. She

tied her knees together next. She put another band of

cords across her calves and one around her mid-thighs.

Again, the tightly tied ropes cut into her skin, dividing

her shapely pins into segments.

She would then twist a rope belt around her waist and knot

it tight, squeezing in her waspish waist. She could then

run a rope through her tightly closed thighs. She tied one

end to the belt in the small of her back and pulled the

rope in front up tight between her cunt lips so that it

pressed against her clit and her asshole. She didn't tie

the front until later.

She had pondered what to do about her breasts, and had

tried many ways to stimulate them. She finally came up

with a way that satisfied her. A loop of thin cord was

placed around the base of each tit, hard against her chest.

She pulled each of the loops tight as if to try to separate

her tits from her chest. A second loop placed about midway

up around each ballooning boob was tied with a slipknot.

She held the ends of those in her mouth.

She then pulled the cunt cord firmly into her pussy and

tied it to the corded belt in front. A cord looped around

the post in the headboard ended in a slipknot to hold her

hands up over her head. By pulling the knot tight after

raising her arms over her head and slipping her hands

through the slip knot, she could close her eyes and pretend

she was tied tight, thrashing around on the over-sized

canopied bed.

She would spend hours in this position at night working out

her sexual frustrations, flexing her hips to rub the cord

against her magic button, stimulating herself to orgasm

after orgasm. But there was still something missing. It

just wasn’t complete, somehow. She was frustrated that she

had to leave an escape route by tying a bowknot in the cord

that tied her arms to the headboard.

The only time she really got off and lost herself in the

feeling of helplessness was the time the cord holding her

arms over her head twisted and got a kink in it. The knot

stuck and there was a half-hour of panic-filled orgasmic

struggling. She so enjoyed that time, she seriously

contemplated not using an escape route and just

masturbating herself until she died of starvation.

But if she did that, she would miss her appointment with

the mysterious stranger. And that date and that unknown

man were becoming increasingly important to her. Call it

curiosity, call it duty. She didn't know. All she knew

was that he was important to Bill and that Bill owed him

something. She felt no loyalty to her faux husband

anymore, but she had said she would do this. Her word had

to mean something, right?

Added to all of the mysteriousness was one burning bit of

information. Probably the most important one to her. As

she had left the mansion for the last time, Bruce had

maliciously pulled her aside. With evil intent, he had

instructed her very specifically to ask the man she was

going out with to do something to her. Something kinky.

She was to ask him to tie her up and then to spank her.

While telling her to do this, Bruce had threatened her with

a very large knife that had frightened her terribly,

especially because Bruce was the one holding it and she

thought he was crazy.

Bruce had intended that this information about what she was

suppose to ask the man to do to her that night would

terrorize her, scare her out of her mind. It did just the

opposite. Those sinister instructions he had whispered to

her fed her nighttime fantasies. She was very much looking

forward to her 'date' with the mysterious man.

-----------------------------------------------------------

----

Karin shook her head to clear these thoughts. She still

stood in front of the full-length mirror on her closet

door. She had deliberated a long time about what she would

wear tonight. She had spent longer shopping at the

exclusive boutique. She didn't know her mystery man’s

name, or anything about him. He was just a blind date she

was to ask to do kinky things to her.

The titillating thrill had a slight taste of fear mixed in

as it swept through her at the thought of the unknown

adventure on which she was embarking. Goose bumps rose on

her silky skin. She watched in the mirror as the tiny

bumps slowly faded away and she shivered again. Her

perfect, silky skin covering her breasts was clear once

more.

The effects of the beating and rape by Bill and Bruce had

faded on her skin, if not in her memory. She examined her

youthful body closely. Other than the goose bumps that

were still visible on the rosy tips of her breasts, her

body was flawless. The bumps on her boobs made a miniature

circular mountain range with the semi-erect nipple in the

center. Her breasts rode firm and high on her chest, the

effects of age and gravity not yet evident. Small

triangular patches of creamy white skin surrounded by a

golden tan indicated the minuscule size of her bikini top.

A similar white triangle pointed like an arrow to the

secret place between her legs. The rest of her body was a

healthy golden tan, but not a deep one. She did not want

to have to deal with anymore wrinkles than she had to later

on in life. She pulled on a thin black thong panty that

just covered the white triangle. It would be her sole

undergarment tonight.

Her nylon stockings gripped the tops of her shapely thighs.

Her long legs were accented by the sheen of the fabric.

The distinctly feminine curves of her upper thighs held

them up with ease, with no need for garters or leg bands.

She had to honestly evaluate herself as beautiful and

desirable. This ability to appraise herself honestly was

new to her. Her shyness was rapidly slipping away as she

turned into a woman who would make her own decisions from

now on. Why a man had never fuck her was a mystery to her,

especially as she had been married for six months! Her

increased sexual tensions in the last two weeks heightened

her awareness of her sensuality and sex appeal. She was

going to go all out tonight. She wanted to be fucked, and

soon.

Picking up her dress, she slipped it over her head and let

it settle gracefully over her trim body. The dress was

ivory white on top with a jet-black micro skirt. The

fabric was translucent and filmy, like fine satin.

Reaching behind her waist, she zipped up the short zipper

and fastened the single hook closure at the top. This

pulled the close-fitting material in tight across her upper

thighs, hips, and lower abdomen. She looked closely and

could see the faint dark outline of the black panties over

her pubic patch, as well as every hair, dimple and ripple

as she moved. The stretchy fabric molded to her like a

second skin and it would be obvious to everyone who looked

exactly what she was wearing underneath her short skirt.

There was no back to the upper part of the dress starting

from the top of the skirt. The creamy white front panel

hung loosely around her body, dangling precariously from a

pair of fragile thin spaghetti straps that tied behind her

neck. Karin tied the straps a couple of times, adjusting

the scooped neck to hang at different levels, finally

deciding on a length that allowed the front of the dress to

readily fall away from her chest. When that happened, it

exposed her completely from her neck to her navel. When

she twirled around, the wind would catch the sides of the

dress, billowing them out to expose her magnificent breasts

from the sides.

"Well, that should give him an eye-full!" she said to no

one in particular. She experimented with the dress,

spinning around a couple of times. "I hope he likes it. I

know I do."

She selected a pair of high heels that accentuated her

height. The five-inch heels pushed her to almost six and a

half feet tall. She had no idea of the devastating impact

her height would have on a short man or one of average

stature. She only knew she looked very sexy in these

heels, and she wanted to look sexy for this mystery man.

How would he know she wanted him to fuck her senseless if

she didn’t look sexy for him?

She had just thrown a sheer white shawl around her

shoulders when the limo arrived in the downstairs parking

garage. Just like his message had said. The note, with a

white wrist corsage, had been delivered to her apartment

this morning. There was no name, just that a driver would

show for her at 6:00 sharp, and to please be prompt.

The driver got out of the car and rang the bell. She

hurried to the elevator and went down to meet the waiting

driver.

The stoic chauffeur gave a visible start when he saw the

extraordinary beauty who stood in the open elevator. He

gave an embarrassed grin at his lapse, then bowed formally

and opened the rear door of the limo for her. She stepped

gracefully into the luxurious passenger area and settled

back into a decadently soft leather seat. The windows were

tinted so dark, Karin imagined she could be naked and no

one outside would know.

A glass of freshly poured champagne was waiting for her on

the small tray beside her seat. She picked it up and took

a sip. It was delicious and the bubbles tickled her nose.

She hardly noticed they had pulled away from the curb and

were on the way to meet her mysterious man.

Two glasses of bubbly later the car drove into the

underground garage of a large downtown corporate building.

The driver pulled up next to a brightly-lit elevator door.

"Top floor, Miss," said the driver, turning around. He

paused, stunned once more by her beauty.

Uncharacteristically he added, "Have a good time."

She flashed him a sincere 'Thank you' smile and stepped out

of the car.

Her 5-inch heels caught her by surprise when she took her

first steps. She stumbled slightly when one slipped off

her foot. She was not quite used to wearing them. The

alcohol made her kind of tipsy, as well. As she bent to

retrieve her errant shoe, she thought of the childhood

fairy tale and the glass slipper. An uncharacteristic

giggle took control of her and eased some of the building

tension in her. Finished putting her shoe on, she stood

and walked purposefully over to the open elevator. She

stepped in, surveyed her options, and giggled again. No

more champagne for her!

She paused and took a deep breath, clearing her head. This

was it, time to get serious. She pushed the top button,

waving goodbye to the driver as the door closed on her

past. She was on her way. She wondered if Cinderella had

been this scared on her way to the ball.

Chapter 3

The elevator doors opened silently on a sumptuous boardroom

that had been converted into a ballroom. There was music

playing, performed by a live 8-piece orchestra. Karin was

impressed. Not that she had ever seen a room this nice

before. She had never heard a live orchestra before. She

stood still and let the soothing sounds steady her nerves.

Several people looked up as the opening doors announced her

arrival. She stepped out of the elevator and waited, her

hands hanging easily by her side. This was as far as her

instructions took her. She had not screwed it up. That

part of her was gone forever.

A well-dressed man stepped forward to meet her. "Karin

Saunders?" he asked.

"Yes, I’m Karin."

He smiled warmly at her and held out his hand. "Welcome to

the President's Ball. Thank you so much for coming. My

name is 'Sam Adams', and I am to be your escort for the

evening." He continued in a conspiratorial tone, as if she

were being let in on a secret. "This is an annual event.

All of the men here are presidents of their companies."

While he was speaking to her, she tried to scope him out

with a casual glance. What she saw started her heart

racing. Her breath came in short gasps. She knew her

cheeks were flushing crimson and that she was now staring

at him openly. She did manage to close her mouth before it

gaped all the way open. She felt her nipples harden and

poke through the thin fabric of the dress. She began to

wonder if she had made a mistake about flaunting herself so

openly tonight.

Sam Adams was a handsome man. Definitely! He looked to be

about 45 years old and tall. He was taller than she was in

her heels. He had a strong face, rugged features, and kind

eyes that crinkled when he grinned. She saw his eyes dance

excitedly as he looked her over as well, his gaze dwelling

briefly on her exposed nipples. She blushed deeply again,

but knew instinctively that the dress had not been a

mistake. Tonight she would get fucked. Finally!

His chest was broad and his waist was slim. He obviously

kept himself in top shape and watched his diet. She took

his offered hand in hers and smiled up at him. His hand

was smooth but strong. It excited her to touch him,

stirring her emotions. There were no sharp calluses or

nails. A man of wealth, but what else had she expected?

He had been appraising her at the same time. What he saw

set his sex drive on overload. It was all he could do to

keep from ravishing her right there on the floor. It had

been done before at these affairs, and often. He had seen

a lot of potential in the young girl that one time he had

seen her lying by the pool. But this was more than he had

even hoped to imagine.

She was a statuesque beauty - a vision of sexual delight

and promise. But the was more. There was something about

the look in her eyes that kept him from being able to catch

his breath, as if she had a grip on his heart. It was an

unaccustomed feeling for him.

Taking her wrap and giving it to the hatcheck girl, he

caught his breath once more as her gown was completely

revealed to him. It confirmed what he had only suspected.

She was totally on display for him tonight. He was enough

of a cad to appreciate the effort she had gone to for him.

He could see her nipples as they peeked through the thin

fabric of the loose top. Her trim waist was highlighted by

the hint of her miniscule panties, and, as she walked in

front of him into the ballroom, he thought he could imagine

the dark thin line of the narrow thong as it disappeared

into her ass crack. Her tightly covered cheeks tantalized

him as they swayed back and forth.

Walking into the main area was like something out of an

investment commercial, the one where every one listens when

this guy speaks. Everyone stopped to look at them. The

orchestra just happened to stop playing at the same time.

Karin surveyed the room.

There were several men in attendance, all of them with that

certain air of self-confidence that made them seem debonair

and handsome, regardless of their drivers license photo.

They were obviously men of wealth. There were a few other

women scattered around the room, as well. All of the women

were young and pretty, some were beautiful, but none of

them were close to Karin's class. She stood out not only

because of her height, but because her poise and beauty set

her apart as something truly special.

Sam was gloating inside, beaming graciously outside. He

had just won the contest for best date. It was sophomoric,

he knew, but still, it was a big deal. Winning that

contest meant that the next President's Ball would be at

his company building. That meant he personally would get a

percentage of all of the ‘contracts’ negotiated on his

premises. It was a point of honor among the members of the

club to be truthful about the amounts of the contracts

negotiated. The disclosure of the parties involved was

another matter entirely, as the majority of those deals

were probably illegal. But what the SEC didn’t know…

And besides all that, the pot for tonight’s best date was

over $100,000 cash, tax-free. Sam allowed a touch of

smugness to touch his gracious smile. This arrangement

with those two queers was beginning to pay off already.

And he had yet to have his way with the guy’s wife!

Sam asked Karin to dance. They moved around the floor

effortlessly. They fit together perfectly, and they danced

as if they had danced a thousand times before. The first

time he twirled her, his pupils widened at the peep show

presented to him by the billowing dress.

She saw his eyes glitter when his gaze dropped to her tits.

She smiled happily up at him. He liked her!

He saw that she had caught him looking at her chest and

grinned sheepishly. It wasn't often that a woman – just a

girl, actually - could make him feel like a bumbling

teenager again.

She saw his chagrined look and leaned her head against his

chest with a sigh. She felt so safe with him. Sam. Sam

Adams. It was a good name. One she would remember for a

long time. They continued dancing and then he dipped her.

The twin perky nipples of her breasts floated on globes of

spongy flesh, slipping out from under the edge of the

fabric. It looked like they winked up at him. He couldn't

resist the tempting treat they offered. He bent his head

and kissed each one lightly before raising her back

upright.

She giggled, her heart pounding. Her head was spinning,

thrilled at the illicit sensations he had given her. She

hugged herself to him tightly.

"Oh, Sam! That tickled!" It was clear she wanted him to

do it some more.

He grinned to himself and lowered his hand to stroke her

ass. His hand automatically molded to the rounded shape of

her cheeks and squeezed firmly. After kissing her exposed

nipples, he felt more in control of the situation. He was

back in command, something he was used to. Still, her mere

presence in his arms sent a thrill through him he had not

felt in years, if ever. His swollen cock dug into her

stomach as they continued to dance, holding each other

tight.

She felt his hard flesh rubbing up against her body and

moaned. She took every opportunity to grind her throbbing

pussy into his thigh. She was going to cum soon. She was

suddenly frightened, wondering if perhaps that type of lewd

display would displease him. She grit her teeth and held

on to him tighter. Her hot moist breath saturated his

starched white shirt.

He seemed to read her mind as to the perilous closeness of

her climax. He casually danced her over to a table and

they sat down. Her breathing slowly calmed down, and she

smiled her thanks to him with her clear blue eyes. Sam sat

silently, entranced with this young girl, drinking in her

beauty and grace and the raw sexual aura she exuded.

Within minutes of them sitting down, one of the other

gentlemen approached their table and asked her to dance

with him. She immediately looked up at Sam, silently

looking to him for direction, for what he wished her to do.

He seemed somehow pleased at her actions. He nodded that

it was ‘OK’.

She danced with that first gentleman and with most of the

other men in the room, as well. Maybe all of them, she

wasn't sure. She only knew that she hardly sat down at all

for a long time. Some of her partners were shorter and

stared straight at her boobs the entire time they danced.

Others were as tall or taller than Sam. To a man, they

danced with her respectfully without groping, but each one

twirled her around or dipped her, somehow managing to catch

a close-up view of her magnificent unfettered breasts.

It was after she had danced with Thomas Jefferson and

George Washington, among others, that Karin finally figured

out that the men at the dance were using false names. Why

they were doing this, she didn’t know. She also wondered

casually who 'Sam Adams' really was, but strangely, it

didn’t concern her a whole lot. She was certain he would

reveal himself to her when he was ready. She didn’t seem

overly concerned that she could not identify the building

she was in, nor could she identify by name a single

individual at the dance. There was no sense that she was

in danger and it didn’t enter her thoughts at all.

After each dance, each with a different partner, she

returned to Sam and sat beside him. Almost immediately,

another club member would ask her to dance. Each time, she

would look up to Sam for his permission. He smiled his

approval at her behavior and deference to him. His

approval pleased her beyond anything she had felt before.

This stranger she had not known for more than two hours was

making her feel as she had never felt. She honestly felt

she would do anything to please him. She knew she could

not mess up with him. That he approved of her. He was a

magical man, this Sam Adams, whoever he was and Karin felt

like she was in a fairy tale.

Finally, as if by a signal, no one else asked her to dance.

Sam indicated for her to sit in the seat beside him and she

sat down, waiting expectantly. When nothing happened after

a couple of minutes, she snuggled into Sam’s side,

relaxing. It felt good to get off her feet for a while.

Just being next to him was turning her on again, though,

and she squirmed impatiently in her chair.

They sat and watched the others dancing by. Sam seemed

content to have her sit silently beside him for now. The

dancing she had done with the other gentlemen had warmed

her up. Rivulets of sweat dripped down her chest making

the thin fabric cling to her skin and appear transparent.

Her tits were proudly on display for everyone to see.

Everyone who passed their table looked appreciatively at

her near naked beauty.

Still impatient, she decided to go for it. She didn't know

how to ask him to spank her and she just jumped in. "I

haven't been too naughty tonight, have I?" she asked coyly.

"Well, Karin, let’s see now. If you had been naughty, I

would have to spank you, wouldn't I?" he answered

teasingly.

Her heart jumped to her throat. There! It was out in the

open. Oh, please, God. Please! She turned in her chair,

facing him. Slowly and deliberately, she leaned forward

slightly and thrust out her chest while shimmying her

shoulders, exposing herself to him alone. "Is this

naughty?" she asked him innocently. She shimmied her

shoulders again so that her breasts jiggled invitingly.

The blatant movement of her tits made her blush becomingly.

She had never acted so brazen in her entire life.

"I'd say it was very naughty, wouldn't you?" he murmured to

her, not taking his eyes off her bobbing breasts for one

instant. With the index finger of each hand, he caught the

edges of the front panel of her dress and pulled it towards

him. The fabric pulled away from her body, and from his

point of view, she was exposed from her neck to her navel.

"Oh my! Yes, I’m afraid so." she said quietly. "I’ve

never done anything like this before. You make me want to

do the most naughty things.” Her voice got quiet. “Does

that mean you're going to spank me now?"

Sam wasn’t sure if she was anxious to be spanked, or

afraid. "Yes, I’m going to spank you...”

She gasped as a small, but definite orgasm rippled through

her body. Sam noticed and smiled to himself. She was

perfect.

“...but not now. Later."

"Oooohhhhh, yyyeess," she sighed. "Will it be hard?"

Still in the quiet voice. Sam decided it must be wistful.

"Yes, it will be hard. And long."

"Oooohhhhh, YYEESS," came her quiet answer. She was wet

and ready for him now. Right there. On the floor. She

didn’t care.

Sam stood and took her hand. She stood up obediently and

he led her out onto the dance floor. As they began

dancing, he took her hands in his, kissed the palms of each

and then placed them behind her neck. She quivered with

excitement at this strange posture he wanted her in. Her

excitement inflamed his lust, making the front of his pants

bulge with promise. He nudged and encouraged his pupil

until she inter-laced her fingers behind her neck and

spread her elbows wide, a quizzical, hopeful look on her

face.

Smiling reassuringly at her, he moved in closely to her

offered body and held her close to his own. He could feel

her pulsating tension. When she started to move her hands

down, he pinched her firmly on her buttock. She gasped at

the sudden pain, winced and then, with his encouragement,

raised her hands back to the position he wanted them in.

She looked up at him with a hurt wonderment in her eyes.

Karin was not used to having someone else dictate anything

to her. She was experiencing the first glorious feelings

of total surrender to another’s will. She drank it down as

if she was dying of thirst.

With her hands remaining clasped behind her neck, Sam began

to take liberties with her luscious body right there on the

dance floor. He brazenly slipped his hands up under the

front panel of her dress and possessively cupped her a

succulent breast in each of his large hands. They fit

nicely over the curved orbs, but there was still plenty

left over.

He began to tease and torment the dazed woman. Her

breathing became even more ragged and she began to loose

her balance. He grinned knowingly, placed his arm around

her tiny waist, and pulled her lower torso against his

lower body. He made her lean back slightly to give him

easier access to her tits. She willingly complied. She

was literally falling into him as they swayed softly to the

sensual music.

Rolling her stiff nipples softly between his fingers, he

watched her reactions. Gasping slightly, she gazed up into

his eyes but didn't flinch or pull away. Her shallow

breathing became more rapid. Excited little mewls and

moans escaped from her throat, music to his ears. The

blood rose up from her throat into her neck and then her

cheeks. She was not embarrassed, just excited. A slow

smile twitched at the corners of her lips.

"Am I naughty to let you do this to me? she asked him

teasingly.

"Very naughty," he said in mock seriousness. "I'm going to

have to punish you really hard." He roughly twisted her

nipples back and forth, pulling them outwards slightly for

emphasis.

"Oh, oh oh OH OH OH OH OH!" Her eyes took on a slightly

defocus look and she shuddered, leaning all of her weight

against him for support.

He continued to gently roll her nipples throughout her

orgasm to stimulate her as much as possible. As she came

back to her senses, he pulled her into his chest. She

relaxed into him and smiled up at him.

"Thank you, Sam." She lifted her lips up to his face for a

kiss.

He complied. "That was just the beginning, kid. Just the

beginning."

They continued to dance for a while, his hands a constant

source of arousal. She drifted along in his arms, felling

no embarrassment at what he did to her or at what he

exposed to the others watching. For her the others didn’t

exist. Only Sam. Her Sam. For their part, the other club

members sat and enjoyed the show. They had all seen it

before, but still, they appreciated the skill of ‘Sam’ and

the beauty of the innocent girl. The other women who were

present were engaged in similar activities as Karin. Some

had had more of an idea of what would be expected and were

actively satisfying their partners. One or two had

resisted the blatant advances and had been restrained and

forced to comply. The coercion of the women bothered some,

but the anonymity provided by the event allowed them to

rationalize that their reputations, if not their

consciences, were clear.

------------------------------------------------------

Back in the isolated apartment, he danced with her again.

Sam had selected some music while Karin was in the bathroom

freshening up. Actually, she was shaking so much with

sexual frustration and excitement she could barely pee.

Sam had turned off all the lights but one overhead

spotlight. This light was now turned to create a circle of

light in the center of the floor. The rest of the room was

in deep shadows.

She had finally gathered back together a semblance of

composure, but then lost it when she stepped into the

dramatically lit living room. All she could see on him

were his two hands and forearms where they intersected the

circle of light, inviting her into the circle. She tried

not to seem to eager as she walked into the light and felt

his arms around her once more. Her heart felt like it was

in her throat and she had to fight to take a breath.

When Sam finally felt the tension began to ease from her

body, he began to move her around, always keeping her

centered in the light. She had thought he was bold in the

ballroom, but here he really let loose. Her hands were

placed back behind her neck again. This time he held them

there, adding an extra dash of spice. Using them as a

grip, he pulled her face up to his. Kissing her gently and

tenderly, he tasted her lips and eyes. The salty taste of

her tears intrigued him, but he saw they were tears of joy.

There was no hesitation, no pulling back from him or his

advances. In fact, it seemed that she rushed to meet his

lips and fingers as they violated her. His kisses became

more insistent until their tongues were thickly entwined.

Both of them were breathing hard, their feet moving only

slightly.

He pulled back a bit and placed a tender kiss on her

forehead. She closed her eyes in sheer pleasure. They

were dancing close. It was a dream, a fairy tale.

Sam reached down with one hand and fingered her butt after

pulling the hem of her dress up to expose it. She giggled

at his touch on her bare ass and moved the firm flesh

lewdly up and down under his wandering finger.

Not satisfied to be passive, she experimentally rubbed his

crotch with her thigh, teasing him as he had been teasing

her all night long. She felt his hardness move back and

forth in his slacks. He groaned slightly, but did nothing

to stop her. She grinned up at his reddened face, his

mouth open, panting. She pressed harder against his

erection and felt him shudder.

"Now you’ve done it! You've been a naughty girl tonight,

Karin," he said to her.

"Oh, really?”

“Yes, you have. I'm going to have to punish you for being

so naughty."

"Oooh. How are you going to punish me?” Karin and Sam

were nose to nose, speaking softly to each other. She saw

he was pleased when she played the role of an innocent

little girl, asking him naïve questions in a tiny voice.

It excited her, too, to let him explain in detail what

would have. Kind of like a verbal foreplay.

“Well, normally little girls who are as naughty as you have

been get spanked. I’m inclined to agree.”

She continued the game. “Are you going to spank me hard?”

He nodded seriously. "Yes. It wouldn’t be much of a

spanking if it weren’t hard, now, would it?” He fondled

her bottom, still bare from his earlier groping. “I much

prefer to give spankings on the bare bottom, too.”

“Oh, Sir! If you do that, spank me on my bare bottom, you

may have to tie my hands." She looked down shyly. “I, uh,

I don’t know if I could keep them still. You would help

me, wouldn’t you?” She glanced back up to see a happy man.

“Yes, Karin, I think I may be able to help you." He

cleared his throat. Games were fine, but there was

business to attend to. “Enough of this.”

He eased her hands down to her sides. Kissing her gently

on the lips he said, "Dance for me, Karin." He sat down

and made himself comfortable. "Be naughty. Be very

naughty for me."

The music was still playing softly in the background.

Karin stood in a brilliant pool of light in the center of a

darkened room. Slowly, she began to sway to the sensuous

music Sam had put on. She stood in one spot on the floor

and let the erotic sounds ease through her limber body.

The straps of her dress came loose with a jerk on one end.

The small thin strands slithered off her shoulders and down

to her breasts.

Only her erect nipples and his imagination held up the top

of the dress.

Karin pirouetted suddenly in perfect time to the music. As

she turned, the fabric flowed away from her body, revealing

her upper body to him completely. She brought her hands up

to cup her tits and began to caress herself. She pretended

these were his hands and let herself go as she made love to

herself for him alone. She wanted to arouse him, inflame

him, to incite him to do all kinds of wicked, wonderful and

terrible things to her. She wanted to push him to go

beyond his limits, to fulfill himself by using her body.

She fingered her nipples, pinching them between her long

fingernails. Her elongated buttons were tortured and

tantalized by the nails, finally being stretched and pulled

out as far as she could pull them. Her tiny hands copied

the things his hands had done to her, arousing her,

teasing, and tormenting until she shuddered with her

release of erotic tension.

She slowly eased the zipper of the dress down the crack of

her ass. With a sexy shimmy, the dress fell in a little

heap on the floor. Her hands found their way underneath

her panties to her cunt. Her legs spread slightly and she

eased one slender finger down along her dripping slit. Her

breath came in short gasps as she went straight for her

throbbing clit.

Standing up, Sam stopped her before she push herself over

the edge for her second climax. "I think that's enough for

right now."

She threw her arms around his neck and buried her face in

his neck.

"Are you really going to spank me, Sam?" she asked him.

There was more than a little anxiety in her voice. Games

were one thing, this was real.

"Yes"

"Hard?"

"Yes"

She held him tighter, not daring to ask the next question.

"Sam?"

"What?"

"Are you going to fuck me afterwards?"

He paused at the question. He knew he was going to, but he

suddenly wanted this to be mutual.

"Do you want me to?"

"Yes," she said softly, without hesitation.

"Should I fuck you hard?" he teased.

"And long, too," she quipped back, her anxiety gone, lifted

by his calm and controlled demeanor. He would not hurt her

in a frenzy. Then seriously, "Please, Sam? Please?"

"Yes."

He pulled off his tie, took her wrists and held them firmly

behind her back. She squirmed against him, but didn't

resist. He looped the tie around her wrists, pulled the

silk tight and knotted it firmly. She groaned and kissed

him deeply.

"It's OK if you hurt me. I can take it." The barely

audible words were whispered directly into his ear. The

shakiness in her voice belied her brave words.

Her eagerness to please him stirred something within him he

had not felt before. He moved his hands down over her

buttocks, marveling at the smooth silkiness of her firm

skin. He squeezed tightly in answer to her question, as he

did not trust his own voice at the moment.

Moving his hands up, he took her by her shoulders and

turned her around to face away from him. His hands moved

caressingly down her smooth back, bumping along each

vertebra on the way down to her ass. She wiggled her hips

impatiently as she shivered at the tickling sensations of

his hands. He slapped her ass cheeks lightly to make her

stand still. That brought a giggle from her. His hands

continued their exploration down along each leg and back up

between them to end at her sopping pussy. He stepped back.

She stood there, an living statue of perfect nakedness,

hands tied behind her back, wearing only a tiny pair of

black thong panties that just covered her puffy lips, thigh

high stockings and high heels. A small drop of glistening

moisture creeping down the side of her inner thigh

indicated her arousal.

He smiled. He enjoyed the view of her from the rear. He

imagined what her smooth silky ass would look like shortly,

after he had reddened it with his hand and his belt. The

mental image of her crimson cheeks was suddenly so real, he

could feel the heat from it in his hands already. Stepping

up close behind her, he reached around her and took a

pliant tit in each hand. Slowly, he began kneading the

firm fleshy mounds, increasing the pressure until she

gasped from the arousal and pleasurable pain he was

bringing her.

He bent his head and grabbed her ear lobe with his teeth.

A sharp bite brought a groan of pleasure from her core. He

grinned and knew she would take a hard beating and love it.

Her nipples, already aroused, hardened and stiffened with

the continued manipulation of her tits. He grabbed them

between his first finger and thumb and rolled them around.

She sagged back into him, her hands tied behind her trapped

in between their bodies. Her lithe fingers scrabbled into

his crotch, seeking his cock. He teased her and shifted

his body, reluctantly moving his throbbing prick away from

her grasp. Just another indication of who was in charge.

Karin turned her head and captured his mouth with hers. He

allowed her this victory. Soon she would have no more

opportunity. Soon.

Her tongue probed his mouth, tasting his arousal,

telegraphing her own to him. He dueled with her tongue,

following it back into her mouth. As his tongue plunged

into her oral cavity, he tweaked her swollen nipples

savagely. She responded by sucking his tongue like a small

cock. He moved back up behind her and allowed her hands to

caress his swollen member.

She frantically managed to get the zipper on his pants down

and free him. The pre-come on the tip got on her hands,

lubricating them. She formed a warm tunnel with her

clasped hands and he began to lightly fuck in and out.

"YYYES," she groaned.

"I think you're ready for your punishment."

"Please, not too hard."

"I think you want it hard, don't you? You like it hard,

don't you."

"No, no, please..." She hesitated. She was afraid to tell

him, afraid not to. She went for it. “I-I-I don’t know.

I’ve never done this before.” She started to break down.

“I’m sorry if I disappoint you.”

"Well, well, well. I thought as much.”

She looked back up over her shoulder at him, fear, hope and

lust all evident in her teary eyes.

He continued speaking softly to her. “Thank you for

telling me the truth. You will not disappoint me. But

although this is your first time, I will not hold back. I

will take you as far as I think you can go, push you to the

edge. I don’t know where that is, yet, but we'll see, my

love, won't we."

That said, he pulled a wooden chair into the circle of

light. He took her elbow, and pulled her over to the

straight-backed chair. Before sitting down, he quietly

pulled off his belt. She didn't see this, as he had turned

her and bent her over slightly so he could admire the way

her firm ass stretched tight. The black fabric of her

thong created a stark contrast against the creamy smooth

skin of her buttocks. He ran his hands lightly over those

soon to be heated cheeks, and he maneuvered her so she

ended up lying over his legs. She groaned at his light

caresses.

"Count," he commanded.

She gave a small whimper as his hand continued to explore

her ass, becoming more assertive as it ventured over and

into her most private areas. Her legs spread slightly,

allowing him easier access. He ran a finger lightly up the

crack of her ass, stopping to gently probe at the tight

ring of her anus. A sharp intake of air told him this was

probably a virgin hole, at least for now.

Drawing his thick fingers lower, he dipped lightly into her

wet slit. Her copious fluids were tangible evidence of her

arousal at being bound and of her reaction to the

anticipated pain. He spread the swollen ruby lips and

looked at the pinkish glistening flower of her femininity.

At the lower apex, he could just make out the knobby

sentinel of her clit. Poking at it with his finger brought

an immediate squirming response from her and a swelling of

pride from the sentinel. Grasping at the prideful knob

with his fingers, he rolled it gently around.

"OH OH OH OH!!! I'm going to cum, don't stop, don't stop,

oh, Please please please."

He quickly pulled his hand up and brought it down sharply

on her right ass cheek.

"AAAAAWWWWW," she screamed, shuddering as she came.

Another sharp slap on her left cheek produced another wail

of sensuous anguish.

He reinserted his still damp finger into her twat,

beginning a slow in and out motion. Her body responded by

humping desperately back on his hand, trying to get as much

contact and penetration as possible. This motion also

caused her hip to rub over his bare prick, making it swell

to even greater proportions.

Sensing his throbbing organ under her hips, she began to

wildly wiggle her hips up against him and around his lap

until she had maneuvered the mushroom shaped head of his

prick to slide under her thigh and lodge against her clit.

Only the thin fabric of her panties blocked his entry into

her tunnel. A low animalistic growl came from deep in her

throat as she settled her cunt down firmly against this

magnificent intruder.

Wryly smiling at such aggressive behavior from a

submissive, he continued to alternatively spank and probe

her for a long time. Her ass cheeks began to glow a

charming rose color with areas of deeper redness. After

that first climax, Karin remained balanced just on the edge

of another orgasm, the tension building up inside her body.

Slipping his fingers under the thin band at the waist of

her panties, he pulled the thong up tight against her ass

hole and deep into her slit. She moaned her approval of

this new pressure. Steeling himself, he gave the panties a

hard yank, ripping the flimsy garment from her loins.

Bucking his hips, he maneuvered his cock up against the

opening of her cunt. Her excited movements caused him an

exquisite feeling as he nudged the head of his cock into

her cunt.

Reaching down to the floor beside him, he picked up the

belt he had dropped there earlier. Judging the time was

right and that her ass was well conditioned to accept this

greater level of punishment, he swung his hand up and then

down, catching her across the taut part of her ass with the

doubled up belt.

There was a sudden whoosh of air and then silence as her

brain tried to make sense of the confusing signals it was

receiving. Gradually, he felt a slight shaking build up

inside her body, much like an epileptic seizure.

Accompanying this shaking was a high keening sound. Not a

scream, but more like steam escaping.

"OOOOHHHH SSSSHHHIIIIIIIIT. I'M CUMING I'M CUUUUUUUMING

AGAIN, OH FUCK."

Her cunt gripped his partially buried prick, squeezing the

head in a velvet glove of indescribable tightness. Seizing

the moment, he raised his hand and delivered another sharp

blow to her ass. Again and again, he swatted her ass with

the belt, concentrating on the fleshy part that jiggled

after each hard blow. Then he began to swat her lower

down, bringing his hand up from underneath to catch her at

the juncture of her thighs and ass. This brought the belt

into direct contact with her aching cunt and asshole.

Throughout this beating she continued to scream and shake.

One orgasm rolled into the next one for several minutes,

each one greater than the last. Her hips pistoned and

humped up and down on his meat, hungry for more and more of

him in her. The pain in her ass was intense, but it only

increased the pleasure she was feeling.

As the belt continued to caress her cunt and asshole,

painting a deep red color, a sudden burst of bright light

filled her head. Something snapped in her mind. All

resistance to Sam and the wondrous pain they were sharing

was swept away as was her fear. She knew this was the

element that had been missing before, this bondage and pain

or discipline was what she craved. There was a second

burst of light, and she lost all sanity, sliding softly

down into a single dimension existence. She only felt.

She focused on the sensations. His next stroke landed

right on top of her pulsating vaginal lips, causing her to

arch her back, bowing her body across his lap. The only

point of contact between them his cock partially buried in

her cunt.

Collapsing from her fantastic spasm, she fell limp across

his legs. Amazed at her reaction to his belt, he gently

palmed her ass with one hand, soothing the burning in those

now fiery red orbs. Taking advantage of her relaxed state,

he moved his other hand around and inserted his thumb into

her sopping cunt. Rubbing up against his still inserted

prick, he thoroughly moistened his thumb up to the second

knuckle. Then, using her own juices as lubrication, he

firmly pushed his fat thumb into her now unresisting anal

ring. With a soft plop and without even a groan from her,

he worked his thumb all the way up into her dark recesses.

He continued to soothingly rub her ass with his hand as he

twisted his thumb around in her rectum. Flexing the thumb

brought a stirring from her as she pushed her ass back up

against his hand. She felt strangely filled with the

intrusion into her ass. She had never taken anything up

her ass, not even her own fingers. Now this thumb had her

aching for something more and bigger up her shit chute.

Maybe it was his spanking of her ass that had aroused these

feelings within her.

She continued to push back onto his thumb, seeking both the

filling of her ass and the comfort of the soothing rubbing.

This movement allowed his cock to escape the tight confines

of her cunt. With a cry of emptiness, she continued to

move back. Because of his thumb up her butt, she didn't go

to her knees, but moved back until she was standing bent

over at the waist beside his chair. Her hands were still

tied behind her back.

As she slid back, his cock rubbed first along her stomach

and then moved up between her swollen and sensitive tits

towards her chin. Finally, she was staring at his ruddy

tool. She had never contemplated sucking on a man’s penis,

but when she saw it winking at her, she had to have it

inside her. She opened her mouth wide and awkwardly lunged

at the wobbling shaft.

After a couple of tries, she was able to capture his cock

in her mouth. Without hesitation she plunged down on that

long hard cock. The helmeted head bumped into the back of

her throat. She savored the feel of his hardness filling

her oral cavity before she moved her head down more,

sliding this wonderful hardness smoothly down her gullet.

The tightness of her throat was intensified when she began

sucking on the root of his organ. Once she was totally

full of his cock, she slowly lifted her head off his prick,

keeping the suction high the whole way up to the flared rim

on the head.

To Sam it felt like his prick was being gripped and pulled

by a velvet sleeve. Up and down she moved her head,

fucking his meat to the root on each stroke. He put his

free hand on the back of her head and tangled her hair in

his strong fingers. He didn’t regulate her movements

except to keep her from coming all the way off his cock

like she had the first time. He wanted her mouth on his

meat the whole time. Slowly she built up her pace until

she matched the rhythm of the thrusts of his thumb into her

ass.

As the cock-sucking beauty ground her ass into his thumb,

he took his hand from the back of her head and reached down

under her. There he grabbed one of her swaying tits. With

a fierceness that bordered on cruelty, he squeezed and

twisted the firm mound, leaving deep red finger marks in

the soft flesh. Then he sharply swatted at one of the

hanging globes, knocking it into the other.

She responded by increasing her sucking. Her tongue teased

and licked along the bottom and sides of his huge manhood.

As she continued her efforts, he suddenly tensed. She felt

his penis swell larger yet. With a deep groan, he began to

bathe her tonsils with cum. Simultaneously, his rough

manipulation of her tits and his thumb up her bunghole

brought her to another electrifying orgasmic spasm.

Slowly recovering from their mutual climax, he pulled his

thumb from her ass. Her knees buckled and she collapsed

into a heap beside his chair, his deflating cock still

locked between her soft lips. In her awkward position, her

swollen tits were pressed tightly against the sharp edge of

the seat of the chair, bringing her titillating discomfort.

She didn’t complain. His hand rested against the back of

her head, slowly stroking her fine golden hair.

Sam’s head was thrown back and he was breathing heavily

through his open mouth. The raw force of his orgasm had

surprised him. He was also surprised by the stiffness

remaining in his cock. Normally, once done, he would

quickly deflate. But this kneeling beauty was still

sucking on a half erect cock. Though she was obviously a

novice at this, she brought an enthusiasm and willingness

to her task that he found incredibly stimulating. He

rested him chin on his chest as he watched her labor over

him. This kid was incredible. He was beginning to grow

hard again.

Using her hair as a grip, he pulled her head up to better

position her mouth over his prick. He began giving her

quiet instructions, how to use her lips and tongue, to lick

his balls, then suck them in and mouth them gently. He

scooted forwards on the chair, giving her access to his

anus. When he instructed her, she licked him there without

hesitation, rimming his tight sphincter with her dainty

tongue. Then back to his hot meat.

Groaning with a mixture of lust and exhaustion, she worked

her mouth around and around his growing slab. She

shuddered with palpable lust as she imagined that hard slab

of muscle shoving in and out of her unused cunt, or maybe

even back there. The thought of doing something so nasty

as that sent a delicious thrill through her. With renewed

effort, she sucked on him harder. With a grunt of

disbelief from her date, a sudden thickening of his cock

preceded a fountain of salty cream that spurt-spurt-spurt-

spurt into her mouth as a reward for her valiant efforts.

She swallowed her second cum shake ever, and loved it.

Chapter 4

They both were still for a while, recuperating from the

intensity of the initial orgasms. But there was a long

night ahead of them. He still had a lot of frustrations to

work out. Jerking Karin’s hungry mouth up off his prick by

her long blonde hair, Sam stood up suddenly. Without his

solid prick for support, she collapsed in a lovely heap on

the floor. Even as she oozed over onto her side, she was

graceful and alluring. He gazed at her loveliness for a

moment, marveling once more at her beauty.

Then, leaning over her, he reached down and helped her to

her shaky feet. She still had on the dark thigh-high

stockings and her high heels. She swayed unsteadily back

and forth, finally leaning heavily into him, resting her

head on his broad chest. They stayed like that for several

moments, he smelling the delicate fragrance of her hair,

she listening to the steady beat of his heart.

They could have ended the kinky activities right then and

just gone into her bedroom and fucked the rest the night

and into the next day. Or into the next week. He had no

doubt he would be able to rise to the occasion repeatedly

with this incredible woman simply because she was lying

beside him. He had cum in her mouth twice, and more

importantly, he had stilled the most urgent of the dark

desires. The urges surged up within him without warning,

as they had when he had spied her by the pool those many

weeks ago. They could only be still by the little sex

games they had played so far this evening.

Contrary to Bruce’s opinion, he was not a mean bastard. He

did not hurt women just to cause pain. In fact, every

woman he had ever tied up, spanked, or whipped knew exactly

what was going to happen before it happened and each one

had the opportunity to refuse. Very few ever had refused

him. A very young Sam had learned from an older lover that

pain, for some women, could enhance their sexual enjoyment.

This wizened lover had taught him to watch for the signs of

a woman’s arousal and of other signs when her limits were

reached. Since they had gone their separate ways, he had

learned of other signs that told of a limit that could be

stretched, or of a desire for more.

This vixen he had secured for tonight had no limits he

could detect. She incited his bloodlust as no partner ever

had before. He wanted to push her, to find the edges that

defined this creature. He wanted to give her as much

pleasure – and pain – as she could bear. From his past

experiences, he knew this Karin Saunders was a rare find.

Moving her off his chest and into the crook of his strong

right arm to hold her up, he led her over to a heavy

leather upholstered chair he had positioned in another part

of the room. He turned her to face away from him and then

moved carefully forward, forcing her to move with him until

the arm of the chair pressed into the front of her thighs.

He pushed on her smooth shoulders and bent her over the arm

of the chair. This put her ass at just the right height

for ramming his cock in either of the orifices she offered

up in that position. He told her to stay still, not to

move.

He walked over to the wall and flipped two light switches.

The first plunged the room into darkness, turning out the

single spotlight. The second turned on a spotlight he had

adjusted to illuminate the heavy leather chair. The

lighting was dramatic, but so much stimulation came from

the visual senses.

He stepped back to her and admired her standing there, bent

over the chair. He ran his hand over the still glowing

cheeks of her smooth ass. If he had read about this in a

story in a sex newsgroup, he wouldn’t have believed it was

realistic, but the fact was he was getting hard again.

This was highly unusual for him. Hell, it was unusual for

any male outside of erotic fiction.

Taking advantage of her obedience at holding her pose, he

finished undressing. He stopped to admire and touch

lightly the beauty before him twice more before he was

completely nude. Bent over the arm of the chair, her large

tits were mashed into the rough leather upholstery of the

seat. Her feet were spread wide at his insistence, opening

her up, inviting him to plunder her treasures that she

willingly exposed to his view. Her hands, still bound,

pressed into the small of her back. Her head was turned to

the side, allowing her to breathe. Her eyes were closed

tightly in anticipation of his next action.

Padding barefoot into the kitchen, he quickly found three

dishtowels neatly folded in a cupboard. Returning to the

form bent over the chair, he tied one trim ankle to back

leg of the heavy chair with one of the small towels.

Spreading her legs about 6 inches wider than they were, he

then secured the other ankle to the front leg of the chair.

He met with no resistance from her during all of this. She

complied with his slightest indication or touch. When he

wanted her to move her foot, all it took was the slightest

pressure in the direction he wished her to move. He ran

his hands up the outside of her legs, lingering over the

soft curves, marveling at their firmness and tone.

He paused again when his hands reached her hips. He could

still feel the heat radiating from her pink cheeks. He

traced with his fingertip the criss-crossed lines the

leather belt had left on her unblemished skin. He noticed

there were no marks from prior beatings or spankings.

Usually, some untrained dominant would get too excited,

swing too hard, and break the skin. It always left a small

mark, sometimes imperceptible.

He looked closer, his grazing fingertip following and

caressing the areas examined by his eyes. When he had

examined her ass, he kneeled down and examined the backs of

her thighs, knees and calves. The skin in this area was so

soft and could be pulled tight by being bent over, as she

was now. It could easily be damaged if one was not

extremely careful. Again he found no marks. His

excitement at the prospect of truly having a novice was

building. That would be just too good to be true. It was

a special thrill – as well as a privilege and tremendous

responsibility – to break in a novice. He stood up and

moved behind her to continue his examination of her arched

back. He leaned over her, pressing his swelling cock into

the crack of her taut ass. This exam also revealed no

marks or scars. It was truly amazing.

He kneeled down in front of the chair and caressed her

mussed hair. She moved her head to facilitate, turning her

face towards him. She lazily opened her eyes and slowly

focused on his face. She had felt it in his caresses, now

she could see the blazing excitement in his eyes. But

there was more there, too. There was a battle with a

darkness waging within him. He needed to exorcise that

darkness, or learn to control it, before it completely took

him over. Before he could speak, she simply said, “More?

Please?”

He leaned over and gently kissed her sweaty cheek. He took

the third towel and gagged her securely. She opened her

mouth at his command and he filled it with the knot he had

tied in the center of the towel. It took some shoving but

it was finally behind her teeth. Without being told she

turned her head away from him and pointed her chin down so

he could tie the towel firmly behind her neck. He swept

her hair up off her neck and tied the two ends of the towel

tightly. His fingers lingered over the soft hairs at the

back of her neck. She was so frail, so fragile, so

trusting. He almost stopped as he toyed with those fine

hairs, but steeled himself to play out at least the rest of

the night. Let tomorrow take care of tomorrow. He shook

himself. He was already thinking of tomorrow, the future.

This was some scary bitch!

Finally, he untied her hands and retied them together in

front of her, extended over her head. Using the long free

end of his tie, he pulled her hands and arms up and over

the other arm of the chair. He fastened the tie to the

front leg of the chair. Tying her arms like that levered

her head up and brought her torso parallel to the seat

cushion. Her tits lifted up off the leather seat cushion.

They swung freely, the sensitive nipples just grazing the

coarse leather, sending waves of pleasure coursing through

her body. Each wave ended at her cunt.

He kneeled down in front of the chair again. She turned

her head to look at him. Her eyes were shining brightly.

His long and tender examination of her ass, thighs and back

had aroused her to a fever pitch. She was ready to explode

at his first touch.

"Are you ready for your real punishment now, Karin?" His

voice was steady, betraying his intense arousal.

She nodded hesitantly, unsure what he meant by her ‘real’

punishment. She had thought the spanking she had just

received was real enough. But she was willing to trust

this handsome stranger. Besides, she wasn’t really in a

position to object.

"Are you sure, Karin? If you’ve had enough, we can stop."

He had thought he detected a bit of hesitation. Best to be

sure.

She gave him a confirming nod, no hesitation this time.

Returning to the straight-backed wooden chair he used

originally, he retrieved his belt. As he slowly walked

back to the trussed woman, he admired once more the perfect

curves of this woman. She was tensed, eager for him to

continue, to vent his rage on her virgin flesh.

Swinging the belt back, he brought the smooth leather hide

forcefully into contact with her right thigh, just above

the back of the knee. Her eyes flew open with the

unexpectedness of this sudden and very painful attack. The

non-sexual pain seared up her leg, past her cunt and drove

deep into her belly, forming a knot she couldn’t breathe

around. She felt as if she would vomit from the intensity

of the pain. The next stroke was placed just above the

last. She began thrashing about in panic, fear and her

natural flight instinct eradicating all vestiges of sensual

pleasure from her body.

Her gag kept her constant screaming to a quiet murmur. He

ignored her panicked jerking and worked up her right thigh

until the hard, fast blows were just below her cunt lips.

The pain so close to her sexual core began to arouse her

again. Groaning in disbelief at her body’s betrayal of her

once again, she rolled her hips sensuously, rubbing her

mound against the arm of the chair, seeking additional

stimulation for her trembling clit.

Just as she was about to leap into a tremendous cum, he

began on the other leg, starting just above her knee,

working the lashes slowly up to just below her ass. The

effect this time was the same as before. The overwhelming

pain from the savage blows to the back of her knee

effectively blocked her pending orgasm. Then, as he worked

his way higher on her leg, that arousal returned, stronger

than before. This time it seemed to be doubled, and she

trembled excitedly as she waited for the next blow to take

her over the edge of the climactic abyss.

He stopped for a moment to assess the effects of the

beating. The backs of her widespread legs glowed with a

deep inner fire. Because she was bent over and her leg

muscles were stretched tight, he knew she would feel this

whipping for several days.

But he also noticed the cunt juice leaking – hell, flowing

down her legs. Bending down he placed his nose just

against her anus. He could feel the vibrations in his nose

as she began screaming at his first light touch. Licking

out with his tongue, he cleaned up her salty musky legs.

Kneeling up under her crotch, he tilted his head to fit his

mouth to her cunt and sucked as much of her into his mouth

as he could. She continued to cream into his mouth and

scream into the towel.

The different stimuli he was giving her body were too much

for her to take. She was torn between the pain and the

pleasure. The one was so good, but the other made that one

even better. She knew he would hurt her again. She wanted

him to hurt her. Somehow, she was beginning to understand

she needed to receive it as much as he needed to give it.

But he was so gentle in between it drove her crazy. His

slightest touch and she would violently orgasm in a sexual

release she had never dreamed possible. The difference

between the two sides to his lovemaking made her enjoy each

of them more. She had lost track of the number of her

orgasms. It felt as if she had not stopped coming since

she stepped out of the elevator and saw him standing there

like a shy schoolboy.

His tongue left her twat and slid along her crack to visit

her ass hole. He palmed her rosy ass cheeks and placed his

thumbs next to the tight rosebud. With a firm pressure, he

spread her open in an obscene invitation to come and visit.

She could barely move, but she made the effort to thrust

her exposed bunghole out to him. He felt her backward

pressure and grinned to himself. She was a greedy bitch,

and he meant that in the nicest way possible.

Pushing lightly, he got an inch of his tongue into her past

her sphincter. Slowly sawing in and out, he massaged the

ass muscle with his thick tongue. New thrills chased up

her spine at this novel invasion. She reached a new level

of excitation and expectation. There was no thought in her

mind to stopping. She would accept whatever he wanted to

do to her.

Sensing her heightened excitement, he left his butt

burrowing. He stood and moved to position himself next to

her. Her arched back presented a perfect target for

whipping. He started beating her high on her smooth back,

up next to her shoulders. He used a figure ‘8’ stroke,

criss-crossing his strokes all the way down her back to the

beginning swell of her ass cheeks. His strokes were firm

and forceful, but not excessive. He wanted to carry her

forward, past all her reservations about pain and pleasure.

This beating was not intended to stop her orgasm

altogether, but rather to delay it until every fiber of her

body would be suffused with sexual energy.

Karin writhed in glorious agony with the pain of the

beating and the emptiness of her cunt and ass hole. She

was not sure which pain is greater. And these sensations

melded with her growing need to cum. The burning need in

her loins, not just from the emptiness, but from the need

to be filled, to be used, to cramp every muscle around a

hot throbbing shaft of male flesh. All these sensations

collided in her inexperienced mind and blossomed into a

full-blown craving. She started grunting rhythmically, in

time to the tattoo of the belt on her back

As the lashes approached her ass, the anticipation of him

striking her there became unbearable. She swayed her hips

back and forth, trying to seduce him into diverting the

next blow, then the next, then the next.

Without warning, he leaned over and began to lash her so

that the thick end of the belt reached around her side and

smacked the tender sides of her swollen tits. First on one

side and then the other. The surprise, the pain, and the

glorious sensations shot from the tips of her swollen orbs

directly to her clit. She began to cum, hard and long,

without breaks. She took off like a rocket and never

looked back.

After several deliberate measured direct hits on her

nipples, her system reached the extent of its capability.

Her skyrocketing orgasm short-circuited her brain and she

swooned, collapsing in her bonds onto the arms of the

chair. He saw his young victim faint in the chair and

stopped whipping her.

For long moments he stood beside her, amazed at her

endurance. When his breathing evened out he moved around

behind her, between her legs. He placed the head of his

cock at the entrance of her vagina. He held there, not

moving, almost in reverence. With a single lunge, he

shoved all ten inches of his re-hardened cock into her

sopping tunnel. He fucked her with a slow movement in and

out, pulling out until only the engorged head remained

embedded inside of her. Gradually, she regained her

senses, thrilling to the novel fullness of his cock moving

inside her. She urged him as best she could to a faster

fucking pace with her limited hip movements, rotating and

twisting as much as her bonds would allow.

"So, you're back with the living?"

An enthusiastic nod 'yes.'

"Good. I wouldn't want you to miss this next part."

He pulled himself out of her, much to her dismay. She

tried to look back at him, her eyes tearing in sadness.

Positioning his cock head at her rear portal, he slowly

pushed forward. He grabbed a creamy ass cheek in each hand

and pulled them apart as far as he could. She screamed

into her gag. The fat head of his cock pushed hard against

the straining sphincter, splitting it wider and wider. She

thought she would be ripped apart. The pain was intense,

worse than anything she had ever felt before, including the

rape with the plunger.

Frantic thoughts ripped through her mind. "He is too big!

He will tear me up! NO! NO! NO! NO! NO!"

The head of his iron hard cock suddenly plopped past the

courageous, but over-matched involuntary muscle of her

asshole. He stopped pushing as soon as it breached that

bottleneck to give her a chance to accommodate to his size.

The pain in her butt eased slightly and she was able to

catch her breath. The telephone pole in her rectum was

huge, but slowly her anal tissues stretched out and

relaxed. The pain was replaced by an oddly pleasant

feeling of being stuffed in the nastiest way possible. She

blushed at this new betrayal of her untried body, closing

her eyes as the erotic feelings took possession of her.

He felt her tensions drain and slid forwards another inch,

burying more of himself into her. She gasped at this new

invasion, but shoved her ass back up against him as best

she could, wanting more. He accommodated her wishes.

Still more of the hard cock slid up her poop chute until

finally, she felt his balls lightly swinging against her

cunt.

"I'm in."

His statement was one of amazed fact. She nodded her head.

"It's tight. Your ass is so fucking tight. It's the

absolute best!"

He slowly began to pump in and out. She helped him as much

as she could. Normally, on the two or three occasions in

his entire life he had gotten it up more than twice, he had

lasted almost an hour before he blasted off the third time.

Never had he gone four times in one evening, and the

evening was still young. But this time, because of the

vice-tight grip of her ass hole, he felt himself peaking

after only 15 or so strokes.

Feeling the inevitability of his eruption, he drove himself

quickly to conclusion. As he blasted off, he buried as

much of his cock in her ass as he could, squirting his

juice deep into her bowels. He fell forward onto her

striped back. His prick deflated and slithered out of the

previously virgin hole with a soft kissing sound. His

white cum leaked out for a little while until her sphincter

reinstated its tight seal on the contents of her rectum.

Sam shook himself. He went into her bathroom, and looked

through the medicine cabinet until he found the things he

was seeking. He carried them back into the living room,

where he poured some lotion into his hands to warm it up.

With her still bound to the chair he began rubbing the

healing and soothing lotion into her legs, her back and her

fuckable ass. Last, he reached under her and gently

massaged her heaving tits with the soothing lotion.

He untied her legs and removed the gag. Leaving her hands

still tied in front of her, he loosened the tie from the

leg of the chair and helped her to her feet. Placing her

bound arms around his neck, her tied wrists behind his

neck, he gently lifted and carried her into the bedroom.

He laid her down on the four poster canopied bed, then

stood and surveyed his surroundings. She caught his

attention and held her hands out and up to him, silently

asking if they were to be untied. He checked the bonds to

determine if they were cutting off the blood or chaffing

her wrists. Seeing that they were not too tight, he smiled

and shook his head at her. Her eyes got wide as she

realized there was more in store for her that night. She

closed her eyes and relaxed into his will. He smiled at

her surrender, but she didn’t see it.

He took her hands and raised them over her head. He tied

them with the loose end of his now wrinkled tie to the

headboard of her bed. She was again fully exposed to his

whims. His hands teased and caressed her straining

breasts. Flicking her swollen nipples sharply, he held up

several clothespins, squeezing one open and letting it snap

shut. Her eyes flew open at the unfamiliar, but ominous

sound.

"Ready for round two?" he asked her wickedly. He already

knew her answer

Her eyes opened wide with realization that she had finally

met a man who could fulfill all of her fantasies ... and

more. She groaned as he got up from beside her. She

watched him silently as he wandered around her room. He

made a motion as if to open her dresser drawers, but looked

to her for permission before he actually explored her

personal items. She nodded it was OK, an amused expression

on her face.

When he finished with her dresser, he searched through her

bedside nightstand drawers, not sure what he was looking

for or what he would find. He was still learning about

this bewitching girl on the bed. To his surprise, he found

a couple of vibrating dildos. Eight and ten inches of

solid shaking rubber.

Holding them up to her, he grinned. "Isn’t one enough for

you?"

She blushed, even though she knew he was teasing. "I just

got them this week. I, uh, I just wanted to have

something, uh, well, uh, I though I needed....” She

changed her track. “The lady at the store said to use one

at a time. Since I didn’t know what size I liked, she gave

me a couple of different sizes that she liked. She said

that way I could have variety. But I haven't used them,

yet. Honest!" She blushed a deeper red at that admission.

"Well, we'll have to try some variety, too."

He went to her dresser and retrieved two long scarves he

had seen there. They were expensive, but he would replace

them later. Fastening one to each of her ankles, he

secured her wide spread legs to the end posts of the bed.

Taking a pillow, he shoved it under her ass, elevating her

blonde muff and further exposing her cunt. She watched him

silently, her pounding heart jiggling her tits with each

pulse. Her breathing had settled down, but the

anticipation was building in her.

He picked up the black 10-inch dildo and brought it up

close to her cunt. Turning it on he rubbed the realistic

head over her clit.

"AAAAAHHHHHH SHIT! OH GOD OH GOD OH GOD OH GOD!!!!!"

Her head snapped back into the mattress as the electrifying

sensations coursed through her body. Her juices began to

flow again, lubricating her cunt walls. Pushing the

realistic cock head lower and in, he inserted the dildo

completely up her snatch. The vibrator was still on. The

unfamiliar vibrations focused all her feelings in her

loins. With her eyes closed and her head rolling around,

she didn't see him pick up the second rubber prick until he

placed the head to her lips.

"Suck it good, Karin. Get it good and wet."

She opened her mouth obediently and swallowed the hunk of

rubber as far as she could, making a gagging sound as it

hit the back of her throat. It was smaller than his cock,

but this was stiff and unforgiving. It was harder to get

down her throat at this angle, too. But she did manage it.

Shoving it in and out a couple of times, he pulled it out

and put the tip against her anal sphincter.

"How's this for variety?" he asked her as he shoved the

smooth sided vibrator up her ass.

Since she was already stretched out from his thumb and his

cock, the spit-lubed rubber prick slid all the way home

with no discomfort. With a twinkle in his smiling eyes he

turned this one on as well and turned to leave the room.

With tension growing rapidly in her assailed genital area,

she watched him leave her room. The clothespins were lying

there on the bed beside her. They were the new ones with

tight springs. She had just bought them last week and

hadn't even used them. What they would do to her if he

used them she couldn't imagine, but just thinking about the

squeezing pain made her nipples stand stiff and erect.

They were swollen with the sudden surge of adrenaline

pumped blood. The constant vibrations dominating her

nether region were building to a tantalizing promise of

orgasmic release, but without direct stimulation to her

clit she knew she couldn't climax. The way he had tied her

left her no way to touch, rub, wiggle, or roll. She

started to moan in glorious agony and laid back to enjoy

the tortuous ride that this mysterious man was taking her

on.

Several minutes passed. She heard him in the other parts

of her apartment, opening and closing drawers and cupboard

doors. Sometimes he would give a wicked chuckle as he

found something in the kitchen or the other room that

tickled his fancy. She shuddered at what was in store for

her.

"Miss me?" he smirked as he stood over her in the darkened

bedroom. She jumped, surprised at his nearness. She had

drifted off into her own world of tormented bliss and had

not heard him come in. He was holding his hands behind his

back. He knelt down and placed the items he had discovered

on the floor, out of her sight. Leaning over her, he

kissed her tenderly, passionately on the lips. He broke

off with difficulty.

Looking directly into her blue eyes, he asked, "Do you want

to go on? The rest will be painful, but rewarding. I

think it will be a new experience for you".

She smiled at his comment. “This has all been a new

experience for me.”

“I thought as much. Maybe you want to take it easy your

first time, save some for later?”

She was quiet for a minute. Actually, there was no

decision for her to make, as she would rather die than stop

now. It was just getting good, though her sanity did rebel

a little at the ‘this will be painful’ part. But a minor

orgasmic spasm was passing through her at the moment, and

she wanted to enjoy it to the fullest.

But there was one question she had, one lingering doubt.

“Are you doing this just for me, or will you enjoy it,

too?”

The question caught him off guard. He had never had one of

his partners ask that question before. He laughed

spontaneously before he could stop. “Oh, yes, Mrs.

Saunders. I’m going to enjoy this. A lot!”

She tilted her head as if filtering out the truth from the

levity. Satisfied with what she had heard, she simply

said, "Do it."

He kissed her, harder this time, more of his own urgency in

evidence. He was careful not to touch her anywhere where

she might receive that critical additional stimulation to

push her over the edge. She groaned in anguish and

frustration as he stood up, his large prick standing at

half-mast. She opened her mouth in a tight ‘O’ and

strained her neck as she invited him to satisfy himself

there. He laughed at her obvious attempts to divert him

and then again at her little-girl pout when she was found

out.

He busied himself around her bed. First three long lengths

of strong string were threaded up over the canopy rods of

the four-poster bed and pulled back down so that the ends

were resting on the mattress. Next, a two-inch rubber ball

was produced.

"Open wide," he commanded.

Meekly, but with a growing anticipation and a bit of fear,

she obeyed. She opened her mouth wide until he could force

the ball into her mouth. The firm rubber of the ball

stretched her jaws wide. He pulled out a roll of duct tape

and wrapped the tape over the ball in her mouth, sealing it

in her mouth. He then completely circled around her head

with the tape twice. It was clearly overkill, but the

psychological feeling of the tape across her cheeks filled

her with dread. That’s what he was after. He wanted her

to feel her helplessness flavored by a good dose of fear,

terror, and panic. She could breathe only through her

nose.

Before continuing, he waited for her breathing to settle

down. He knew what she was feeling. He wanted her to.

But he wanted her to submit to him, trust him, even in her

terror. He sat by her side and caressed the soft skin of

her cheek above and below the duct tape. Slowly the

wildness, the terror drained from her eyes. This was all

so new, so demanding of her trust. It was what she had

dreamed of, wished and prayed for, but now that it was

here, it was almost too much for her.

Closing her eyes she fought for control of her emotions.

But the darkness behind her eyes amplified her terror. Her

tear-filled eyes flew open and she reached out with her

eyes to her knight in shining armor. That he was the one

who had placed her in this situation was irrelevant to her

at that moment of her need. He brought up his hands and

caught the single tear as it trickled down the side of her

face. He raised his finger to his lips and kissed the tear

away. He did the same when a tear escaped from her other

eye. That simple act began to breakdown her terror, to let

her surrender her trust to him. He continued stroking her

face, making reassuring sounds to her, staring into her

eyes until he could see her total submission to his will.

She was ready.

Leaning over her prone spread-eagled body, he brought his

mouth to her nearest tit. Capturing the somnolent nipple

between his teeth, he chewed on the nub lightly. Then he

sucked as much of the soft flesh into his mouth as he

could. There was much of the huge mammary remaining

outside his ravenous mouth.

Bringing both hands into play, he cupped them around the

base of her breast and squeezed, forcing the nipple even

farther into his mouth so that it bumped up against his

tonsils. His tongue was massaging the captured tit flesh

constantly, working in a frenzied manner. Her nipple

responded to the stimulation by standing up as high as it

could.

Feeling the bloated nipple in the back of his mouth, he

quietly reached over and grabbed one of the clothespins.

Bringing it up beside his mouth next to her tit, he pulled

back, exposing the glistening erection. The clothespin

snapped around the surprised button and brought a

stiffening of pain from the girl attached to the tortured

nipple.

Very slowly and very deliberately, he repeated the process

on her other breast. Even knowing what had happened to its

partner and knowing exactly what was in store for it did

not deter the brave nipple from responding to his erotic

manipulation. The poor soldier was captured and smashed

inside the wooden cage.

She knew immediately where the third clothes pin was going

from where he kissed her next. She tried to block it out,

but she felt her body responding to his insistent skillful

and highly erotic manipulations. First his fingers rubbed

lightly over her labia, exciting the already over-heated

bud of flesh hidden there. The nodule grew larger under

his skillful touch, then larger still. Its growth and size

surprised her. She had never had that happen to her when

she touched herself down there.

Her clit was expanding like a tiny penis, until he could

actually slide his finger and thumb up and down it. When

he kissed the tip of her clit and sucked the tiny bit of

flesh into his mouth, she gave up all pretense of coherent

thought and fell into an orgasmic stupor. If this was what

it felt like to a guy when they got a blowjob, it was no

wonder the entire male population was sex-crazy. She only

revived when the tender bud was cruelly trapped between the

jaws of the unforgiving clothespin.

"Should I continue, Karin?"

"More? What more could there be?" she thought. But she

knew she wanted it. She wanted it all. Shakily she nodded

her head ‘yes’, her eyes wild with lust, pain, fear and

excitement.

Reaching down by the bed he pulled up some more items he

had retrieved. He held them up for her inspection and they

caused her to quake to her very soul. Such simple things,

but in his hands she had no doubt they would cause her

unendurable torment. And pleasure. She knew where he had

found the large peacock feather, but where had he gotten

those large rubber bands? She trembled as he gently

caressed her tits. Her quick breathing and erect nipples

holding the clothespins upright betrayed her true feelings

of excitement.

Squeezing her large boobs tightly, he slipped one of the

fat elastic bands from his wrist and moved it down to the

base of the pliable globe. He doubled it with a quick

twist of his hand. The doubled band caused the already

firm and swollen flesh to stand even taller. Another band,

smaller and tighter than the first, followed and settled

around the middle of her tit. A third, smaller yet, was

placed just behind her nipple, causing her tit to look like

a two-tiered jiggling mound with a cherry on top. He

quickly made her other tit into a matched set.

The feelings in her chest were strange. Not pain, exactly,

but there was a restricting feeling that pumped her cunt

full of dripping juice. As the bands constricted, the

flesh between them became even more sensitive. The trapped

blood in the banded sections of the globes swelled to a

maximum, the throbbing pain increased to become an ache in

her chest.

Moving quickly, he took one of the strings he has strung up

over the canopy. He tied one end of two of the strings to

each of the clothespins. She looked like an obscene puppet

on a string, and he knew that she would react to just like

one, too. Taking the loose end of one of the strings

attached to her tits, he gently pulled the string taut. A

sharp intake of breath told him that the flesh between the

jaws of those wooden maulers was not numb. He secured a

small glass animal from the collection on her dresser to

the end of the string with a tight knot. When he dropped

the small weight from the height of his shoulders, the

string jerked on the clothespin attached to the nipple.

She squealed in pain and pleasure as the waves of her next

countless orgasm crashed on the shore. She began panting

in anticipation of the next two weights.

He did not disappoint her. A similar sized weight was

attached to the string of her other tit. Knowing the pain

was coming didn't lessen the intense feelings. For her

newly discovered erectile clit, he selected a lighter

weight, as this was extremely sensitive flesh. He played

with the three weights for a while, keeping her keening in

agony and delight. Sweat covered her frantically shaking

nude body. Unladylike rivulets coursed down her chest and

ran between her tortured breasts to pool in the depressions

in her delicate neck.

He picked up the stiff feather with a wicked grin. A light

caress along her sternum surprised her with the intensity

of the tingling tickle. Brushing the tip of the feather

back and forth over her stomach started her giggling

uncontrollably. But being gagged, the sounds were muffled.

Her giggling made the tied weights bounce up and down. She

arched her back as the next great wave of orgasm crashed

over her.

Several minutes later he tired of this isolated pastime and

traversed her entire body with the exception of her cunt

and tits. The constant laughing and giggling strained

every muscle in her stomach, neck and arms. She learned a

new form of pain as the muscles knotted tightly. The

tendons of her legs were flexed rigid and stood out as she

tried to get relief from the diabolical feather. She never

knew she was so ticklish. Sweat was running off her body

now, soaking the sheets of her bed. She didn't know if she

could take much more.

He set the feather down on the bed beside her. Relief

flooded through her as the laughing reflex settled down,

and she grinned up at him, though the confining duct tape

hid her mouth from view. He was grinning, too, but too

wickedly for her taste. Her pulse quickened as she

realized there was more. She closed her eyes in abject

surrender as she realized as well, that, whatever it was,

she wanted it.

He stood by the bed for a moment, letting her catch her

breath. He leaned down and picked up the last item from

the floor. At first she didn't recognize what it was and

then it dawned on her.

"Oh, God! The old drapery cords!" she thought.

He had made a multi-tailed whip from the familiar cords and

put a hard looking knot in the end of each strand. This

was a use she had not put them to. He lazily dragged the

makeshift cat o' nine tails across her taut belly. A

sudden flick of his wrist wiped all traces of laughter from

her shocked frame. Nine points of burning pain burrowed

into her mid section where the knots collided with her damp

flesh. A second flick and nine more tiny welts rose up on

the now irritated flesh. It looked like measles or chicken

pox.

"Nice effect," he said, mostly to himself.

Then, very methodically, he whipped her over every inch of

her exposed flesh, save her face, starting at her

fingertips and ending with her toes. He also avoided her

breasts and pubic areas. Tiny angry red welts covered her

body. Even her neck, chin and ears were spotted. Tears

were running unimpeded down the sides of her face. She had

never felt such pain. And she loved it. Deep down she

knew she loved what Sam was doing to her. She also

realized she was falling in love with him. Her sham

marriage to Bill Saunders never entered her mind. It was

Sam whom she wanted, with all her being.

Karin knew Sam wasn't finished with her yet either. His

eyes were still gleaming with excitement, watching her

every reaction. He was playing her body to the max, like a

virtuoso. She was a magnificent instrument, bringing out

the very best of his skills and talents. Karen knew she

could and would take every thing Sam had to give. The next

stroke brought searing pain to the sole of her right foot.

Two of the knots landed between her toes. The other foot

received similar treatment.

"Now for desert," he said, almost to himself. He seemed to

know she was beyond comprehending.

Picking up the feather he had laid down, he lightly touched

the stressed flesh on the bottom side of her breasts. It

was as if he had used an electric charge. A shock ran

straight to her cunt and she came hard, screaming into her

gag. Another feathery touch on the underside of the other

globe, and she spasmed again. Back and forth, back and

forth the marauding feather took her ever higher, never

letting her find balance or catch her breath. Her head

whipped around the bed, her blonde hair flying in frenzied

disarray. She was in a perpetual state of orgasm.

He deliberated carefully his next and last move. He wanted

her conscious for this, but only at the very brink of

sanity. She would have to be crazy to enjoy this, and she

was almost there. One more stab and flick with the long

feather across her ballooning nipples put her in what he

hoped was the right state of mind.

He heard a constant babbling escaping from behind her gag.

Her eyes rolled up in her head. He had to hurry. Quickly

he flicked the wrist of the hand that held the whip. Nine

hard knots of cord pummeled into her mound, her clit, and

her slit. Another second quick flick up her legs

terrorized her anal area.

The surprise of the twin blows was so great and the pain so

intense, she squirted both vibrators out of her holes at

the same time. She promptly fainted in a completely sated

orgasmic coma, continuing to moan and spasm even though she

was unconscious.

Chapter 5

Karin revived slowly. For long minutes she resisted the

persistent call of awareness and laid there in blissful

peace. But the call was too strong. So was her curiosity.

She allowed each of her senses to engage one by one.

Gradually, she became aware of her surroundings.

The first thing she noticed was that she was no longer

bound in any way and that all the pain seemed to be gone.

She felt as if she was floating, kind of. Opening a wary

eye, she saw she was in the large hot tub on her apartment

deck. The gently bubbling hot water soothed away the aches

and pains of the strange ordeal she had just gone through.

She felt safe, secure. She felt loved, for the first time

she could ever recall. It was an entirely new feeling for

her and scared her more than a little bit. There were too

many complications in her life to have to deal with that,

too.

Sam was sitting behind her in the tub, carefully keeping

her face out of the water by holding gently, but firmly

onto her breasts. He was continually amazed at the feel of

them in his grasp. It felt like they belonged there. He

sat there waiting for her to rejoin him, quietly whispering

into her ear, humming familiar lullabies, caressing her

hair and neck with soft kisses. Karin felt him behind her

and relaxed into him. She grinned to herself as she felt

his erection between them.

Turning her face to his, she smiled at him, then kissed him

long and hard, urgently. She raised herself up in the tub

and reached beneath her for his prick. When he tried to

remove his hands from her breasts, she pinned them lightly

against her sides under her arms. She liked them right

where they were. They seemed to fit just right.

Positioning herself carefully, she lowered herself onto his

erect manhood. When she was fully impaled, she leaned back

against his chest once again. She reached her arms up over

her head, providing him with full access to her body and

the freedom to explore it at will. She began to massage

his cock with her cunt muscles. No other action was needed

as she slowly, rhythmically coaxed the cum out of his one-

eyed snake. They both knew there was still a long night of

fucking ahead of them.

=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-

She rolled over in the rumpled bed. Strong sunlight was

assaulting the other side of the curtains, trying to force

reality into the isolated apartment. Slowly stretching her

arms above her head, she felt the deep satisfaction of

having been well fucked. She felt like the cat that had

eaten the canary and purred softly under her breath.

Noticing the emptiness in the bed next to her filled her

with a sudden panic, rudely jolting her to wakefulness. He

was gone!

She was halfway to the front door of the apartment when she

smelled the freshly brewed coffee and the peculiar

fragrance of burned toast. A quick peek into the kitchen

showed the table set for two, but no Sam. She heard the

shower start running and grinned.

Walking into the steamy bathroom, she was totally at ease

with her nakedness. It seemed natural around him. She

slipped silently into the shower enclosure, coming in

behind him. The water beating on his bowed head covered

the sounds of her entry and he was unaware of her presence.

She stood silently behind him, enjoying the chance to

observe him unawares. He was a handsome man, strong and

virile, the kind of man that made young girls hearts beat a

bit faster. As hers was doing now. Water beaded up across

his broad shoulders, then combined into streams and coursed

down his muscled back. She started to reach out to touch

the pale dimples of his ass cheeks, but stopped short,

wanting more time to memorize his image.

As she watched him standing there in the pulsing stream,

she suddenly felt as if she were intruding into something

very personal. His face, that part she could see, was a

picture of tormented indecision. That was something she

would not have expected to see there. He had exuded an

almost overpowering aura of strength in the short time she

had known him. To see him like this made him more human

somehow, more lovable. It was at that moment in the steamy

shower, that Karin lost her heart to this man whose true

name she still did not know.

Karin cleared her throat. He didn’t hear her. Again. He

opened one eye and squinted at her under his armpit. His

pleasure at seeing her standing there, naked, was rapidly

apparent. She dropped her gaze to his swelling

appreciation, fascinated by the velvety hardness that had

given her so much pleasure the night before.

She moved up behind him. Her arms went around him, hugging

him close. Her hands explored his chest, as much a turn on

for her as her firm tits pressing into his back was for

him. Her sharp fingernails terrorized the skin around his

pectorals. He groaned, wiggling his butt slightly into her

tickling pussy hair. She gave a laughing squeal, and

attacked his upper body with renewed vigor, her tormenting

fingers pinching lightly here, pulling a hair, kneading his

well defined muscles.

Reaching down with one hand, she picked up the bar of soap

and a hand towel. Savagely, she soaped his entire body,

leaving his skin a dangerous shade of red. She spared no

part of him and was extremely thorough, but she didn’t

dwell on his erect penis. He voiced his disappointment

when she clinically washed it and moved on. Her lilting

laughter enflamed his passions more than the magnificent

touch of her hardened nipples as they brushed back and

forth as she labored over him. She finished with his face.

He had steeled himself for an abrasive cleansing here, too.

She surprised him. Using just her fingertips sans

fingernails, she worked the soap into a lather, swirling

the tiny bubbles into his relaxed expression. She aimed

the jets from the showerhead over his face and removed the

last of the soap from him.

Sam remained standing with his eyes closed, savoring the

brief respite from a world that demanded so much from him.

Karin stood easily in front of him, pleased she had been

able to do this simple task for him. She looked up at his

relaxed face, so different from the tormented expression

she had seen him wearing earlier.

When he did open his eyes, she silently offered him the bar

of soap and the hand towel, lifting one eyebrow in a

teasing challenge. He accepted.

As he lathered up the hand towel with a fresh charge of

soap, she slowly lifted her hands and laced her fingers

behind her neck, simulating the posture he had put her in

on the dance floor. She spread her feet as far apart as

she could, bracing them against the walls on either side of

the shower stall. Her eyes never left his as she assumed

this position. When he nodded his satisfaction, that he

was pleased, she blushed with a rush of pleasure, giddy as

a schoolgirl.

Sam was as thorough with her body as she was with his. He

did, however, take the opportunity to linger over her

charms, almost to the point of obsession. Her skin glowed

with a hot fire as he moved from washing one area to the

next. It reflected the flames his ubiquitous touch ignited

in her core. When he finally stepped back, the last

patches of soap scum circling slowly around the drain, she

was literally shaking. She had closed her eyes as he had

washed her face and her eyes remained closed.

She heard the water shut off and felt the cool rush of

outside air as the door to the shower opened. A soft thick

towel, compliments of the previous tenant, had been placed

over the radiator. She melted into its warmth as Sam dried

her tingling body. She notice he patted her skin to dry

her, not rubbing as most males would have done. She

wondered where he had learned to do that, then realized it

didn’t matter. What mattered was that he cared enough to

take the time to do it with her.

When he had dried her and had used another towel to wind up

her long wet hair into a turban, he kissed her lightly on

the forehead. “Time to wake up!” He gently released her

interlaced fingers from behind her neck.

A small crack appeared in one tightly closed eye. She

caught him as he was staring at her tits. She giggled and

did a little shimmy for him, making the tips bounce

provocatively. With a playful slap on her flanks, he

chased her back into the kitchen, where the coffee had long

since finished brewing.

Sitting at the table with him seemed the most natural thing

to do. Even being naked didn’t seem out of the ordinary.

They kidded back and forth about unimportant things, both

of the comfortable with the other. He didn’t apologize for

the dark shade of the toast, but she could tell it bothered

him. There hadn’t been much else in the apartment suitable

for breakfast. She hadn’t bothered to stock the pantry.

She hadn’t been expecting overnight guests. He seemed

pleased when she admitted that to him, for some reason.

It would have been a perfectly idyllic morning, but Sam

suddenly farted. This was not something he was accustomed

to doing, even by himself. He had been reaching for his cup

of coffee. Karin had said something that struck him funny,

and he had chuckled. And then, ‘BLATTTTTT!’ Just like in

the cartoons. He was so surprised, he dropped the cup of

coffee. Which wouldn’t have been nearly as devastating, if

he had only been wearing some clothing. Hot fluid

splashing on your thighs, heading for higher ground, is not

a suave-inducing stimulus.

Karin hadn’t recognized the sound of passing gas, but she

would have undoubtedly identified it by smell in a short

time. She did, however, see the scalding hot coffee headed

for her favorite recreational area. She acted with

instinct and self-preservation as she grabbed a pitcher of

water and a towel. She dumped the water over the areas of

his legs where the coffee had landed, diluting the heat

with a torrent of water. Falling to her knees by his

chair, she began to blot at his wet thighs with the towel,

which was much too small to do any good.

She didn’t know when she recognized the telltale smell and

then associated it with the rude sound that started the

whole mess. But she did, and, in spite of the eye-watering

effects of the noxious gas, she started to giggle. She

snorted, actually, when she tried not to laugh at him.

Afraid she had offended him by snorting, she looked up.

His look of abject horror and embarrassment fueled her

funny bone. This time she just about blew a gasket trying

to keep from laughing.

Seeing she wasn’t totally grossed out, Sam began to laugh

himself, at himself. He didn’t realize that it was these

little imperfections that endeared him to her. Not that he

should go around farting. But he need a few chinks in that

shining armor to make him seem human.

For Karin, it was nice to know he was human, after all.

Although she had found that out earlier this morning when

she had worn him out in bed. Nothing she had done to or

for him could get him hard again. He had sheepishly

admitted defeat and promised her, if she would only let him

sleep that there would be more in the morning. Karin had

reluctantly given up her efforts to rouse him, and they had

snuggled down into the disheveled bed for some rest.

”How do you feel?"

The question came during a lull in the laughter. Its

seriousness marked a change in the direction of the

conversation. She stopped and took a minute to do a quick

self-assessment. "Fine," she answered, somewhat surprised.

"You were wonderful last night," she continued with a

giggle.

"So were you." He paused as he got serious. "Karin, you

seem to like your sex rough. Just how rough can you take

it?" He still wasn’t convinced she was a rookie at this.

That would just be too good to be true, and, as he had

learned the hard way, there was usually something wrong

with anything that looked that good. He didn’t consider

her marriage a problem. It had never stopped him before.

"I don’t know,” she said hesitantly. “I really have only

tied myself up. And once they tied me up and beat me in

the basement. They hurt me then.” She looked up at him.

It didn’t make any difference to her why she had felt and

reacted as she had. She had liked the rough sex with him,

with her Sam, and she knew she wanted it again and again

and again. She answered his question as honestly as she

could.

“How rough do I like it? If it is with you, as rough as

you want. I, uh, well, I trust you," she ended simply.

She didn't say she loved him, but that was what she meant

to say. She thought she had better wait and see how things

turned out. Besides, this was all new to her, and on top

of that, she was a married woman!

He thought about something for a moment, and she could tell

this was the important question. The one he had been

tormented by in the shower. men were so funny. Even with

her limited experience, she could spot a nervous sweat.

With a wry smile, she watched him squirm as he struggled

with his question, shifting in his chair uneasily, clearing

his throat, tugging at his earlobe. Then he seemed to make

up his mind. She noticed the quickening of his pulse at

that ticklish spot at the base of his neck. Her tummy

flip-flopped, not knowing what was coming next, but knowing

she would do it without question and love it.

“Karin? Do you - “

“Yes.”

He raised an amused eyebrow at her. “May I finish?”

“I’m sorry. I’ll listen. But the answer is ‘Yes’ to

whatever you want to ask me.”

“Thanks for the warning!” He laughed, relaxing. Once

again, he posed the question. “Do you want to continue?”

He didn’t have to specify what he meant. She knew. With

her heart in her throat, she quietly answered, “Yes.”

There was no doubt in her voice.

He was silent for a while, as if weighing the truthfulness

of her answer. Then he continued. “If we continue, you

will only have one more chance to stop. After that, I will

decide what, how much and how long. In addition, you will

address me as ‘Sir’ or ‘Master’ at all times. Is that

clear?”

“Yes.”

He waited, looking at her expectantly.

“Oh! Yes, sir!”

“That will cost you. All lapses of obedience will be dealt

with harshly.” He stopped for a moment. “Karin, from this

point on this is not a game. Up to now, we’ve both been

dancing around. We’ve had some fun, a few laughs, and, if

I’m not mistaken, we’ve both enjoyed it. However, if you

take this next step, go with me to the next level, I will

expect you to obey me without hesitation. I will do to you

and with you what pleases me. You will not climax unless I

specifically permit it, regardless of the situation. Do

you understand?”

Karin sat quite still, her eyes wide. He was describing

something she had never even fantasized possible. Heaven.

Two tears leaked from her eyes and headed towards her chin.

From the crestfallen look on his face, it was clear he

misunderstood.

“Sir? May I speak?” Her voice was tiny.

“Yes.”

“What you are describing; I would be your slave, Sir? A

sex-slave, or something?”

“Yes.”

“Oh.” She paused, thinking. “Sir? May I ask for one

favor? Please?”

“It would be unusual for a Master to grant conditions. But

let’s hear it.”

“I have a fantasy, Sir, this recurring picture in my head,

of being tied up in a certain way. If I describe it to

you, do you think you could, you know….? Please, Sir?”

She was quivering. It was hard for her to admit her

deepest secrets, even to him.

His outburst of deep laughter startled her. "OK, Karin.

Pack an overnight case. You can tell me in the car."

It was not a question or statement. It was a command from

her..., her..., her what? Her lover? Her friend? Her

Master? She didn’t know what the relationship was becoming

but she did not even think of hesitating or questioning his

absolute authority or his intentions. She packed a small

bag, with very few clothes. Her cunt was really wet now.

While she was packing, Sam straightened the apartment. He

readjusted the lights, moved the heavy chair back to where

it had been originally. He also put all the toys he had

used away. The only item he kept was the corded whip. It

had proven very effective and he wanted to keep it. He

also retrieved a bag from his car parked in the garage

downstairs. He had about $175,000 in cash, his prize money

from last night. He didn’t want to take it with him or

leave it in the car. The banks, even his, was closed. He

found a loose seam in the couch and stuffed the bundles of

money in between the springs. He pulled the fabric back in

place and surveyed his work. Not bad, but it wouldn’t last

if the couch were moved. But it shouldn’t have to hold up

for long. Just a few days.

An hour later, after a telephone call to his secretary, and

a quick fuck with her leaning over the back of the leather

chair, they were on the road in his car. She sat as close

to him as she could get, curled with her feet drawn up

under her on the seat. His arm was draped across the back

of the seat and she had her head resting on his chest. She

was contented to let him take her wherever he wanted.

Occasionally she would slip a teasing finger in under his

shirt to twirl the hair on his chest. He smiled to himself

as he drove, his Cheshire grin inflaming her passion.

They had traveled for about two hours, out of the city,

through the endless suburbs, until they were winding up

into the mountains of a neighboring state. He pulled off

the road onto a graveled road and then onto a narrow dirt

path, the ruts bouncing them around his car as he hurried

to get it out of sight and into the cleverly camouflaged

parking area. The car could not be seen unless you were

standing right behind it. Even a view from the sky was

blocked.

Stopping the car, he tilted her head up to his and kissed

her.

"We walk from here." Again, it was a command.

He got her bag from the back and helped her out of the car.

"Stop. Turn around."

She did as he commanded.

Taking a length of cord from the trunk, he walked up behind

her. Pulling her wrists behind her back, he looped the

cord around them. He pulled the rope tight, and it dug

into her skin. This would leave marks before too long.

Next, another cord was looped around her elbows. It, too,

was pulled tight. Her elbows came together in the middle

of her back until they were touching. The discomfort this

caused her was incredible. Her position pushed her tits

out in front of her, her erect nipples just exposed over

the top of the low-cut shirt he had told her to wear.

Sam had only allowed her to wear the small cotton tank top,

a pair of cut-off shorts and the 5” high-heels from last

night. He had modified her shorts so that they were

obscene. When he was done trimming the fabric, only the

fat central seam was remaining to run between her thighs

and that rode up tightly into her slit. The sides and back

of the shorts were cut high, too, so that both her ass

cheeks were glaringly exposed.

She felt little or no embarrassment being dressed as she

was. Because this was what he wanted. She would have gone

to the opera dressed like this.

The cord tied around her elbows was next looped around her

neck. He tied a slipknot in the cord and pulled the loop

tight. Her eyes opened wide at that, real fear visible in

them. Holding on to the end of the cord like a leash, he

started walking up the trail. He tugged on the cord

firmly, urging her to follow. The slipknot cinched up

tight against her windpipe and she lurched after him.

"Don't trip and fall," was all he said.

That was going to be easier said than done. Still

struggling for breath, she tried hard to focus on the rough

terrain of the narrow trail he was taking. It was not used

very much, and was occasionally crossed with thick roots

and fallen branches. Somehow she managed not to strangle

herself as they climbed up the side of the mountain for

about an hour. At last they approached a sturdy cabin set

up against a cliff.

He stopped in front of the door and worked the huge lock.

The smooth click told her it was obviously in good working

order. He hadn’t pulled her after him so she stayed right

where she was as he carried the bags into the cabin. He

was inside for some time. She waited, strangely calm,

given the circumstances. She looked up as he came out the

door and walked back to where she was standing. He seemed

pleased that she hadn’t moved but didn’t comment on it. He

bent slightly and kissed her on the lips.

"Karin. Listen to me very carefully. This is your last

chance to back out. After this, I won't ask you again nor

will I listen to your pleas for mercy. And you will plead

for mercy, believe me. So, are you in or are you out?"

She looked him deeply in the eye. Stunned at the intensity

of the emotions she saw there, she turned to look out over

the scenic vista at the front of the mountain cabin. She

turned back to her lover.

"I’m in."

He smiled at her and kissed her tenderly. As he kissed

her, he undid the snap of her cut-offs and slowly,

teasingly unzipped them. She wiggled her hips impatiently

to help him and the obscenely cut shorts fell to the ground

around her feet. She stepped out of them and kicked them

away from her, naked from the waist down but for her shoes.

She felt the cold steel of a hunting knife sliding along

the skin between her breasts. In her forced posture, the

stressed fabric of her shirt stretched between the two huge

mounds. It was cut like butter by the razor sharp knife.

In seconds, she stood nude in front of him.

He stabbed the big knife into a log on the side of the

cabin several feet above her head. Pulling on the cord

around her neck, he forced her to stand with her face

pressed up against the rough logs. He tied the cord from

around her neck to the handle of the knife.

He had retrieved some more rope and a couple of tent stakes

when he had gone into the cabin. He pounded the stakes

into the ground, one to each side of her, and tightly tied

her feet so that they were spread far apart. She was

forced to stand on the very tips of the toes of her high

heels and the strain in her calves made them stand out even

more than the high heels did.

"You can scream up here and no one will hear you..."

She had wondered why he had not gagged her. He seemed to

enjoy her helplessness to communicate with him.

"...but then I'd have to listen to you caterwauling, so

we'll just put this in here for now," he continued, as he

shoved a large phallic gag into her mouth. Two straps

around her head secured it deep within her mouth.

He threaded a cord between her body and the wall. Pulling

the cord up under her tits, he looped the cord over and

around them in a figure ‘8’, then pulled it tight. The

thin cord bit into the soft pliant tit flesh. The large

orbs stood out even more than they normally would as they

were pulled and smashed against each other. He tied the

ends of that cord behind her neck. Any backward motion by

her head pulled the rope tighter. The slipknot he tied

there would slowly strangle her tits off her chest.

His finger ran down her ass crack to explore her asshole.

She began to moan with arousal and tried to hump back onto

the inquisitive finger. Reaching farther around under her,

he found her sopping slit. Putting two of his large

fingers together, he jammed them upwards and buried them up

to the palm of his hand. The suddenness of the assault

took her breath away. He started roughly sawing them in

and out until her body began to respond to the crudely

erotic actions.

Seeing the response he was waiting for, he stepped back

from her and exposed his ramrod-hard prick. Quickly, he

jammed his cock into her steamy twat. He got about six

inches buried into her and had to move in and under her to

shove in the last four. Each thrust lifted her up off her

toes and mashed her tits into the rough exterior of the log

cabin wall. The logs she was smashed up against were

placed just right so that by chance her stiffened nipples

began to work their way insidiously into the crack formed

by two of the logs. As he continued to fuck into her, her

nipples began to swell even larger and stiffer from the

arousal of the fucking and his rough treatment of her.

Each ramming thrust pounded her tits into the wall, shoving

her pliable breasts further and further into the crack.

Eventually, her nipples became firmly embedded in the

narrow crevasse between the upper and lower logs, held fast

by their swollen state.

He shifted suddenly, throwing his hips from side to side

while he was buried to the hilt in her steaming cunt. This

side-to-side motion amplified itself as her upper her upper

body was whipsawed back and forth. Her elongated nipples

slid along the narrowing crack, pinching them in tighter,

even without the increased swelling.

Given the rough hewn logs that made up the cabin, it was

not surprising that the sharp point of a huge sliver jammed

into the side of one of her nipples, skewering it clear

through on one of his more forceful thrusts into her cunt.

This painful situation, unintended by him, set of fireworks

of pain and, strangely, pleasure in her body. She shook

violently as she climaxed for the first time at the cabin.

Her cunt squeezed tightly around his cock as she came.

Grunting franticly through her gag, she urged him to fuck

her faster and harder.

He plowed into her clasping pussy harder and faster, racing

toward his own finish. Panting and jerking, his cock

spewed his slippery cum deep into her pussy. Once, twice,

three, four times his cum squirted into her. He couldn't

believe it when his prick caught a second wind and poured

another three spurts into her milking cunt.

"Shit! This girl is special, all right. My prick is still

stiff," he thought in amazement.

He pulled out of her and stuffed his prick back into his

pants. She remained hanging on the wall for a few painful

seconds. Her feet no longer were in contact with the

ground. She was being help up only by her pinched, and now

terribly stretched, nipples. When they did finally pull

free of the grasp of the logs, the large sliver broke off

the log and remained skewered through her nipple, looking

like a small harpoon through a tiny rosy whale. The pain

of her tortured, stretched flesh flashed straight through

to her brain, blossoming into a fireball.

As she passed out from the sudden pain, her knees gave way.

She slumped towards the ground, strangling herself on the

cord around her neck. Re-acting quickly, he caught her up

under her arms and raised her up, propping her against the

wall. Reaching up, he pulled the knife out of the wall and

loosened the cord that was tight around her neck. He used

the knife to slash at the ropes binding her ankles to the

tent stakes. He quickly picked her up and tossed her like

a limp doll over his shoulder. He carried her like that

into the cabin and laid her gently on the bed.

That was when he first noticed the small trickle of dried

blood that had run down over her breast when the sliver

impaled her nipple. Grimacing at the unintended pain she

had felt, he carefully leaned over and licked the blood

away. Then he gently cleaned the wound, but left the large

wooden sliver in place.

Chapter 6

She came to on the narrow bed about an hour later. Her

hands and elbows were still tied, as was the cord around

her neck. Her legs had also been tied at the knees, calves

ankles and mid-thigh. Carefully, she tried to move her

legs and found that any movement tightened the noose around

her neck. She was loosely hog-tied and any movement, any

movement at all, would tighten the noose around her neck

strangle her. It sent a stab of fear through her gut,

twisting and tightening her involuntary muscles. It also

brought a tangible tingle in her cunt.

This was the treatment she had unconsciously longed for all

her life. She couldn't explain it. That's just the way

she was put together inside.

She slowly turned her head to look around the cabin. She

could see nothing. The cabin was dark and she was looking

directly into the wall.

She heard Sam come back into the cabin. He was stomping

his feet on the porch outside to clean most of the mud and

dirt off his boots. The door squeaked open and footsteps

wandered around the room as he first set down the sacks of

groceries he had just purchased, then checked on the fire

in the stove and other details. The footsteps stopped by

the bed.

Karin craned her neck around to look up at him. She looked

in his eyes, worrying that she had displeased him somehow.

But he was not angry. Not as far as she could tell,

anyway. He stood there with a strange questioning look in

his eyes, as if he was trying to find an answer in her eyes

to a question he didn’t want to ask.

Sam was carefully watching her to see what her reaction to

her situation would be. He was mildly concerned that he

might have gone too far this time. He needn’t have

worried. He had way of knowing that this young woman’s

capacity for pain, especially when that pain was inflicted

by him, was made almost endless by her growing love for

him. He could have done anything to her. Much more than

he had so far. But they had only just begun.

Permanent damage was not his style. He had a dark need to

inflict pain, yes, but it was pain with a purpose and with

willing participants. The pain he gave to his partners

when they were in the city was mostly a game of control or

domination. He loved the feeling of total control.

Up here in the cabin, it was different. Here it was not a

game. He didn’t bring just anyone up here. Here he bared

his soul, and gave vent to the raging darkness in him. It

was controlled, yes, even calm. But not cold. It was as

if his total emotions were brought boiling to the surface

to be poured out on his partner. This time, it was just a

young girl. He questioned again his decision to bring one

so inexperienced to his particular hell. That thought

quelled the rising tide of emotions. What if...?

She saw his face was somber. The first thought through her

mind was that something was wrong with him or that she had

displeased him. "Is everything OK?" she asked.

He gave a half laugh. "You tell me!"

She looked surprised. Why shouldn’t she be OK? "You mean

with me? Sure, I'm fine, but I mean, is everything OK with

you? You're not mad at me are you?"

He grinned down at the bound girl. "Yeah, everything's

fine...” He reached down and ran his fingertips lightly

over the curve of her ass. You couldn’t see the marks he

had put there just last night. He was pleased with his

skill, even with crude homemade whips. He continued,

“...and, ‘No’, I'm not mad at you."

He turned and gestured toward the stove. "Are you hungry?

I ran down the mountain to get some food for us. We may be

here a while."

She had not noticed her hunger, but now that he mentioned

it, she was famished. "Yes, I guess I am at that. Would

you like me to fix it?"

He busied himself with the ropes that bound her.

"No. I want you to rest up some more. If you go out side,

there is a little steam around back. A little way down it

widens into a pool where you can clean up. Go for a swim

and freshen up. Follow the trail around to the left and be

back in about half an hour, OK? Stay on the trail, and you

won’t get lost."

She clumsily got to her feet. She had been bound in one

position or another for so long that the muscles her legs

and arms were cramped and the joints stiff. He helped her

walk around the cabin until she was a bit steadier on her

feet. She was still wearing the high heels she had on last

night.

He tossed her a towel and a bar of soap. A stinging slap

on her fanny sent her scurrying out the cabin door. She

had 30 minutes to herself. She sensed it would be a

mistake to be even a minute late.

It was a beautiful afternoon in the high mountains. The

crisp clean air filled her lungs as she wandered down the

path to the pond. The path was clear, but a little

overgrown. She hugged herself with happiness. She had

never felt so free or happy before. She was naked in the

outdoors, and she didn’t mind at all. He had sent her out

this way. It was what he wanted. She laughed out loud.

Sam would probably not have understood the reason behind

that delightful sound coming from her. She had found a man

who understood her, who had taken her to heights she had

never imagined, who had answered her unasked questions,

and, most importantly, who had fucked her beyond her

wildest dreams. She trusted Sam. She laughed again as she

realized she also loved him madly.

The water in the deep mountain pool was cold and clear.

The steam was glacier fed, and this high up the sun didn’t

have much chance to warm the icy waters. Karin put down

the towel, set the soap on the bank within easy reach and

dove into the deepest part of the pool. The shock of the

cold water wiped all other thoughts from her mind and all

traces of pain from her system. She burst to the surface,

gasping for air.

The penetrating cold caused her nipples to go rigid, but

not with excitement. It was damn cold, and her skin felt

like it wanted to crawl off her body and head for the

warmth of the stove. Especially the tormented areas, like

her nipples. The spear of wood was still through the one.

Now that she could get her hands up to her tits to move

them around, she took the time to looked at her wounded bud

more closely

It had been a sliver from a hardwood tree, a clean, slender

piece of wood with no little barbs. The wood pierced her

rosy button right through the center of the body of it on a

horizontal axis. Sam had obviously cleaned it, but he had

left the sliver in. The small shaft held her one nipple

out in a constant state of semi-erection. A light

fingertip to the tip of the pierced nipple brought a

shudder.

"He must want it to stay," she thought.

Getting the bar of soap, she stood thigh high in the frigid

water and lathered her body, careful not to disturb the

wooden skewer. She didn't notice any remarkable soreness

or bruising on her body as she soaped up, evidence of the

mastery and skill of her tormentor. She hugged herself in

her giddiness at the thought that he must really care for

her.

She stood and breathed in the clean mountain air, now

carrying the clean smell of the soap. It was a manly scent

and reminded her of the smell of Sam. She desperately

wanted to be completely his, to remove all the traces of

herself, even down to removing her own scent. She lathered

up her hair with the soap to remove the traces of her

shampoo, piling and scrubbing the soapy tresses on her head

in a twisting motion. When she had soaped up all she

could, she dove back under the icy waters and rinsed her

glowing body.

The icy waters numbed her after a while and she was able to

stay in the pool. She floated on her back, happily looking

up at the fluffy white clouds as they chased each other

across the sky. She was happy, relaxed and at peace.

The refreshed young woman got out of the pool, dried off

and then wrapped her hair in the towel. She wore it like a

turban as she made her way back up the winding path to the

cabin. She walked proudly, her breast thrust out, her head

high, her nakedness a badge of love. She had no idea what

would happen next, but she was not worried. She trusted

Sam.

When she entered the door, the first thing Sam noticed was

that the wooden dart was still in her nipple. He grinned

to himself. "Good," he thought to himself. "I'm glad I

went back to get that equipment. I just may be able to use

it again."

His prick lurched in his pants as he watched the young girl

sit quietly by the fire, drying her hair with the heat from

the cheery blaze. She was so trusting with him. He began

to feel a stirring of emotion toward Karin that was foreign

to him, but not all that unwelcome, either. Her complete

trust in him stirred his paternal instincts. Maybe it was

her youth, her innocence. He didn’t know. It wouldn't

stop him from carrying out plans he had for her, but now he

rethought them to make sure he took the extra effort to

make special for her. To his surprise, he found that he

was looking forward to it being special for him, too.

He went back over their brief history in his mind as he

watched her finish drying her hair. There wasn’t much to

review. He had seen her once before last night and lusted

after her body. Then she had stepped off the elevator.

She looked so scared, so fragile, so trusting of him as he

introduced himself. She had been so fucking beautiful. He

realized it was at that moment she had captured his heart.

It was something about the look in her eyes, her

willingness to please him, her wanton display of sensual

pleasure and pain - this girl was special and he responded

strongly to that specialness.

Sam finished preparing the meal in a pensive mood. The

scene was very domestic, not at all the way things normally

went up here. Definitely not what he had imagined it would

be like. He shook his head to break away from these tender

thoughts, and caught her eye with the motion. She saw him

looking at her and smiled at him. Her smile was radiant,

open and honestly happy.

He motioned her over to the table, indicating the chair

where he wished her to sit. She rose and came over to him,

her heels clacking lightly on the rough stone floor. He

helped her into her seat gently, careful not to jar her tit

with the pierced nipple. She noticed his attempts and

playfully punched at him.

"Oh, come on silly, I won't break. You should know that by

now, don't you?"

He blushed sheepishly that she had seen through him so

easily. He got serious. "Karin, I just want to be sure

that this is what you want. It can be rough. Very rough.

If you want to stop now, just say so and we'll go back to

the city."

She looked at him curiously. "Do you have something else

planned to do to me? Something you want to do?"

He slowly nodded his head.

"Is it something special? Something you haven’t done

before or, maybe, ... very often?" She blushed at her

brazen attempt to find out if he had had others up here.

She knew he probably had. But the curiosity had just

leaked out of her mouth.

"Yes." He didn’t which part of the question he was

answering.

She looked at him steadily. "Then I want to do it."

"Don't you want to know what it is before you decide that?"

She paused before answering him. "Will it excite you?"

"Yes."

"Will you fuck me?" she continued, teasing him with the

game they had started at the dance.

"Yes," he grinned back.

"Hard?" she whispered, her eyes closing dreamily.

"And long," came the reply as he leaned into her and kissed

her tenderly.

"Often, too, I hope,” she giggled, adding another line to

their special dialog. She tipped her head back, lifting

her face to his. “God, I love your cock! Does that make

me bad?" She giggled again into his mouth as they kissed,

their tongues dueling playfully.

The light dinner he had prepared was a delightful affair,

quiet banter back and forth. Were it not for the setting

and her dress, it could have been the first date it

actually was. Sam discovered much more about her than she

did about him. He was pleased to find a quick wit and a

sharp, but untrained, mind sitting across from him.

Somehow, that increased her appeal to him. He marveled

that she could sit there, unconcerned about her nakedness,

totally at ease.

The food was gone, the table had been cleared and the

dishes cleaned and neatly put away. He had postponed the

next session as long as he could, and they both knew it.

He walked quietly over, sat in the big chair by the fire,

and stared into it, thinking. He pulled out a worn pipe

and filled it with his favorite blend. There were too many

places in the city he couldn’t enjoy a leisurely bowl full

of tobacco, too many sensitive pink lungs he could

infuriate. This was the only place he could smoke, and not

worry about it. He was also putting off the inevitable.

Karin stood quietly behind his chair, watching him struggle

with his decision. She took the opportunity to drink in

some of the details about him she had not had a chance to

before. The way his lightly graying hair curled up over

the collar of his flannel shirt. His hair was tousled now,

not perfectly groomed as it had been at the dance. The

touch of silver was just at his temples, giving him a wise,

distinguished look. She could see why he was successful in

banking. He just looked like you could trust him with your

money.

She followed the curve of his neck across his broad

shoulders. She had never seen a man with such strong

shoulder and arms. She was not small, but he had lifted

her as if she had been as light as a cheerleader. His

strong hands were holding his pipe. No, they were

caressing it, making love to the carved burl wood.

She sighed softly to herself. men were so easy to read.

Well, this one was, anyway. Karin had watched Sam’s

emotions change over the last 24 hours. The change was as

obvious to her as if she was watching a television drama.

It must be a natural female ability. She had sensed that

he was in love with her even before they came to the

mountains. She thought it was kind of funny, in a way.

Now that this big strong man had feelings for her, he

couldn't continue and give her what she really wanted.

What she needed.

She went over to him and sat on the arm of the chair.

"Sam? I could be naughty if it would help you. I'm

already stark naked. See?” She lifted her uninjured tit

to his lips. He blew a ring of smoke that settled around

the succulent flesh.

“And I've already fucked you." She reached between her

legs and spread her lips wide apart, giving him a glimpse

at the moist cavern of her desires.

She moved her hands into his lap and loosened his belt.

His pants opened as she slowly lowered the zipper,

tantalizing them both. She slipped her soft hand inside.

Grasping the shaft of his stiffened cock, she pumped it up

and down. Freeing his prick from his pants, she got off

the arm of the chair and knelt in between his legs.

Looking up into his steady eyes, she said, "If you'll tell

me what to do, I'll be a naughty girl and lick it for you.

I’ll be anything you want me to be." She leaned forward

and placed a kiss on the tip of his cock. A clear drop of

pre-cum was pooling in the pee slit, and she stuck out her

tongue to lick it up. The salty flavor sent shivers down

her back.

He looked down at the blonde head slowly engulfing his

cock. “You’ll really be anything I want?”

She nodded, not taking her mouth off him.

“Would you be my sex slave, my sex toy, a whipping post for

my darkest fantasies?”

She halted her movements on his cock. He could feel her

shudder, her hands tightening slightly on his scrotum. She

looked up, tears in her eyes. “If you would have me.

Yes.” They were tears of joy.

“Good. That’s what I want. You are my slave.” He settled

himself in his chair. “Just keep doing what you’re doing,

slave.”

"Like this?” she asked coyly. She leaned forward and

kissed his prick again, this time circling the head with

her tongue after. "Was that good?"

"Shit, slave,” he bellowed gruffly. “Will you quit teasing

me?"

"But Sam...”

“SILENCE!”

Her eyes opened wide. He was into the ‘game’ now. He

sounded serious, not just gruff. Something warned her not

to push him. She waited silently for him to continue.

“First, let’s get something straight. I am not ‘Sam.’ We

both know that. I will tell you later what my name is, but

for now, you can call me ‘Sir’ or ‘Master.’ Second, you do

not speak unless spoken to. Not a word, unless I give you

permission. Third, and most important, you are here for my

pleasure, not yours. Unless I allow you up, you will kneel

on the floor, by my side.”

His stern voice filled her being, carrying her along into

this new definition of her roles. She had heard nothing

she could object to. She was his to command, his toy to

play with, his body to beat.

“That will do for now. I will inform you of other rules as

you break them. You will remember them better after you

have been severely punished for displeasing me.” He smiled

as he felt her tremble at this last part. “Believe me,

slave, you do not want to be punished. You will not enjoy

it.”

She continued to hold his large cock in her mouth, and

after a while he noticed she was not doing much with it.

Like she didn’t know what felt good to him. He tapped her

lightly on the top of her head to get her attention.

“You call that a blow job? Explain yourself and your poor

performance!”

Her eyes lowered and he could see tears forming. She had

been trying to please him. When she first started

speaking, it was so soft that he couldn’t hear her.

“Speak up, slave. When you have the opportunity to be

heard, I don’t want to have to listen to you twice!”

I’m sorry, Sir. I truly am. I've only done this once

before. That was last night when you spanked me so nicely.

I want to do it right, so it will be good for you. Please,

Sir. You'll have to tell me what to do."

He looked down and saw the hurt in her eyes. "She really

doesn't know how!" he thought, amazed at her innocence and

unspoiledness.

"You're doing fine, Honey," he said aloud. The term of

endearment slipped out so naturally he didn't even notice.

Karin did hear it. Her ears burned and her eyes brightened

as she approached his prick again. With patience and

caring, he instructed her between his groans of pleasure

how to suck him off the way he liked to be sucked. She was

a willing student, often going above and beyond the call of

duty, even to the point of forcing herself to take him down

her throat. After a while it was easier and almost seemed

natural.

His load of cum pumped deep into her throat. Karin quickly

pulled back so that just his swollen head remained in her

mouth. She sucked voraciously on the spewing organ as he

had instructed her earlier and milked it dry. She pulled

back when he was done and rolled the sticky white fluid

around her mouth with her tongue, savoring it as would a

connoisseur.

He watched her with a wry smile. “Do you like the taste,

slave?”

"Ummmm, yes, Sir. It tastes good. I liked it," she

announced. "Sir?” she asked him quietly.

He nodded for her to continue.

“Sir, do all men taste the same?"

Her innocent question made him burst out in laughter,

doubling over in the chair.

She got a hurt, pouty look on her face. She thought he was

making fun of her. He lifted her up onto his lap, settling

her down with his still erect cock trapped between her

thighs. He wrapped his arms around her and buried his face

in her hair.

"I don't know the answer to that, Honey, uh, slave. I've

never tasted another man, or even myself."

"Oh. Yes, Sir.

“Sir?” she asked a moment later.

He again nodded.

“Sir? I know I’m not very smart or sexy, but I really want

to learn about things. Please don't make fun of me, OK?

That hurts too much. In here." She pointed to her heart.

"I know it hurts. I would never intentionally hurt you

that way. Never. Sometimes the things you say make me

laugh, though. It’s because you are so innocent, not

because you are dumb."

They sat in comfortable silence for several minutes.

"Sir?"

"Yes?"

“Are we talking now, or do I still have to be quiet all the

time”

He grinned at her sincere face. “You may speak, slave, but

do not try my patience with trivia!” He slapped her bare

asscheek for emphasis.

"Will you really punish me if I displease you?"

He squeezed her tight. “Karin, I don't want to hurt you.

I care about you too much."

"I know you care about me, Sir. I’ve known that when you

danced with me." She reached down and grasped his

throbbing cock that was nestled between her thighs. "I

also know you want to hurt me.” She caressed his hardness,

feeling the hotness. “It excites you." She gave it

another squeeze. "It's all right. I don’t mind.” She

looked up at him. “You can do anything you want to me. I

want you to." She paused. "I, uh, I-I-I love you, Sir."

With that, she lowered her head and watched her hand stroke

his cock.

"And I like it, too," she added quietly, “when you hurt me,

when you like when you hurt me. Looking up, she asked, a

plea for understanding in her eyes, "Does that make me

weird or something?"”

If he hadn't loved her before, he did now. His heart

softened as the beautiful young girl on his lap confessed

her love to him. After he had beat her. Asking him for

more. What more could he ask for in a woman?

He reached around and cupped the pierced breast. He

gradually squeezed the soft flesh until she squirmed

against his lap, his cock inching its way towards her cunt.

"Ummmmm. Yessss." The feeling that he was back in control

filled her with a glow that started the fires burning in

her belly.

He reached out and gently grasped the piece of wood

piercing her nipple by the two ends. She inhaled through

her clenched teeth but did not pull away. She looked up at

him and smiled.

"It's OK. Really. Play with it." She pushed her chest

into his hand in invitation.

He slowly twisted the wood around like a tiny propeller.

She squeezed her eyes shut and arched her back into the

pain as it gradually built, burning, twisting at the tip of

her tit. She bit her tongue to keep from screaming. She

didn't want to stop him because of her cries.

The nipple snapped back to its normal position when he let

go. She sagged into his chest, gasping for air. She had

climaxed hard. There was a wet spot on his pants leg where

she was sitting. She felt the spot grow as more cunt juice

leaked out.

Karin looked down and shifted her buttocks to see the

stain. "Oooohhhhhh, now you're going to have to punish me,

huh, Sir?" she asked hopefully.

"Yes, now you're really going to get it," he grinned back.

Chapter 7

Standing up suddenly, he deposited her unceremoniously on

the floor. "Stay there!" he said commanded.

Karin smiled to herself, the tingles starting already. Her

man was back to normal. Or what passed as normal for their

relationship. She didn't want him to be gentle when he

needed to be rough. That just made him confused. There

would be a lot time for gentleness - for 'normal' sex -

later, she was sure. Right now, she wanted him to be her

master, her tormentor.

Sam walked over to a pile of equipment in the back of the

room and selected several items. Coming back to where she

sat on the floor, he gave her a single hand motion. She

stood. He led her out onto the wide porch across the front

of the cabin. A twirling of his finger and she turned to

face away from him. She had tried to read his face to see

what was coming, but he had kept all expression off his

face. He had also kept his body between her eyes and the

equipment in his hand. Karin sighed and tried to relax,

but the excitement kept her dancing from foot to foot.

“Stay still, slave! I’m not going to chase you around the

room.”

She grinned to herself, teasing him with her swaying hips.

An unfamiliar ‘whoosh’ preceded an incredible stinging pain

on her buttocks. She yowled and grasped her burning ass

cheeks with both hands. Her eyes were squeezed shut,

trying to block out the pain.

Roughly, one of her wrists was grabbed and pulled away from

her soothing efforts. He fastened a thick, wide cuff

around the wrist and laced it on. It was more like a

bowling glove with a thumbhole but the thumb and palm

exposed. That hand was dropped and the other fitted with a

similar glove.

He reached behind him and pulled over one of the benches

that lined the porch. He manhandled her until she was

standing on the bench. Because of her height, her head was

close to one of the large crossbeams that held up the roof.

He stood on the chair behind her. A brief squeeze of his

arms around her reassured her. She closed her eyes as she

leaned back into him. The moment passed quickly.

He shuffled her forward until she was on the end of the

bench. He lifted her right arm up and out. He hooked a

ring on the back of the gloves to a clip on the outermost

crossbeam. She had not noticed the rings on the gloves.

Her arm was stretched out wide to the side and to the

front. Her left hand was raised and clipped, her arm

stretched out wide to the other side. Satisfied she was

secure, Sam stepped down off the low bench and retrieved

another piece of equipment. She felt him step back up

behind her.

He ran his hands up her exposed sides deliberately, feeling

each rib carefully as he advanced up and around towards the

undersides of her tits. The air she took into her lungs

went no farther down than his hands. By the time he

lightly touched the bottom of her breasts she could barely

breathe. Her breath was coming in short gasps. He kissed

the top of each bare shoulder until she calmed down.

Reluctantly taking his hands from her chest, he pulled her

hair back, tilting her face up. Her mouth dropped open.

He gently inserted a large rubber ball into her mouth. It

was the same one he had used the night before. He had

fashioned it into a ballgag now. He pulled the ends behind

her neck and tied them tight. Her mouth was stuffed. He

could feel her groaning now that the gag was in place, but

he could hear nothing.

Sam stepped down off the bench. He walked around in front

of her, going down the two steps to the ground to do so.

Her hips were at shoulder height. He grasped her around

her waist, lifted her feet off the bench and slowly lowered

her until she was holding her weight entirely by her gloved

wrists. Her bare feet dangled several inches off the

ground and out away from the floor of the porch. If she

had been aware of it, she had a beautiful view down the

mountain towards a deep blue lake in the distance.

He walked back into the cabin, mostly to calm himself.

Something about seeing her that way excited him in a way

nothing else had. And he hadn’t even started whipping her

yet. Just the one stripe of the riding crop crossed her

perfect white hemispheres. He had to get himself under

control, or he could easily hurt her, leave a permanent

scar. He had, in the passed, left his ‘mark’ on a special

woman or two. But it wasn’t a scar caused by a poorly

wielded whip. He picked up his pipe. He hadn’t finished

smoking it, as he had been interrupted, albeit, not rudely.

Sitting down in his chair he looped his legs over the arm

so that he was looking out the door of the cabin. He re-

lit the old pipe, gazing quietly out the door as the

aromatic smoke filled the cabin and beyond, calming him.

The sight of the naked girl hanging from the roof of his

porch pleased him. He had dreamed of doing this, but had

never done it before. The imagery of whipping a naked

woman hanging exposed to the wide outdoors appealed to his

sense of the twisted and the absurd. It was fantasy come

to life. One of his oldest and dearest.

He knocked his pipe against his palm when it was empty to

clear the bowl. Thoughtfully he put it back in the sealed

humidor to protect it from drying out in the thin mountain

air. The moisture-tight seal closed with a ‘click’.

Karin heard him move away from her, leaving her hanging by

her wrists. She was thankful he had used the wide cuffs.

The extra width and strong lacing provided support over a

greater area and didn’t cut off the blood flow. She

wiggled her fingers occasionally, and couldn’t sense any

signs of circulatory distress. She had heard him move

away, then there was silence. For a while, the only sounds

she could hear were the sounds of her body, her heart

beating, the blood whistling through her aorta, the

gurgling of gas. Then she heard the birds calling out, but

buzzing of the millions of insects. She heard the

underbrush rustle as something slithered or crawled nearby.

The sun heated the board in the roof and they cracked with

expansion. The world of nature, when you get out away from

the city, is a noisy place.

She had smelled the smoke from his pipe as it drifted out

the cabin door. Its sweet pungent odor enveloped her mind,

giving her visions of golden forests, crisp autumn walks

hand-in-hand, cheerleaders and football games. The

invisible tendrils of smoke wove their magic in her brain,

binding her tighter to her mystery man.

The ‘click’ of the humidor in the silent mountain air

sounded like a gunshot. He was moving again! She braced

herself as best she could, but she had no idea what was

coming. Only that one stoke that still burned across her

butt.

Her arms ached now, the muscles and tendons being stretched

more than usual. She tried not to kick her feet as any

motions tormented her already stressed shoulders and arms.

She strained to hear him, to find out where he was, and

perhaps that way get an idea of what he was going to do.

Sam slipped off his loafers, then his socks. The cool

stone of the cabin floor felt good against his feet. The

bare wood on the porch itched a little as he stepped

quietly out of the cabin. He wasn’t intending to sneak up

on her. He knew that after a while, the pain would focus

the mind, much like meditation. He did not want to disturb

Karin’s focus. Just yet.

When nothing happened and no sounds were made to give away

his position, Karin’s mind wandered to the scene in front

of her. She saw the lake in the distance more clearly than

ever before. The trees were so clear; she could see each

needle, each leaf, and each branch. She saw the tiny

animals; the ones no one ever saw because they never moved

if they thought you were there. Their tiny bodies darted

back and forth, as if they needed to be in two places at

once. She wondered at the color of their fur, puzzling

that it looked so soft and...

RED!!!!

Karin shook her head. Where did that come from? She

looked back up at the pink clouds. There were red tinges

to all the leaves. What was...

WHITE!!!!

Now the sunlight reflecting off the shimmering leaves left

white spots in her eyes. Karin’s dulled pain receptors

were coming back on line, but her mind was fighting it.

The colors were too pretty. She had never seen such vivid

colors before. The REDS!!! and GREENS!!!! and BLUES!!!!

filled her mind with rainbows.

On the sixth stroke, she heard the soft ‘whoosh’ just

before the supple crop caressed the bottom crease of her

ass, just above her thighs. A trickle of pain leaked

through the rainbows. It was the beginning of the dam

breaking. She struggled to hold on to the various colors,

and managed to find a couple images she could retain.

These she wrapped in her memory, holding them tight as her

lover covered her naked exposed bottom with stripe after

burning stripe.

When he could stand it no longer, he moved behind her and

thrust his steel shaft into her compliant anus. She did

not resist him, but he used no lubrication except the sweat

that dripped down her back and into her ass crack. It was

insufficient to ease his way. He forced his way into her

burning ass one centimeter at a time. He went slowly,

almost leisurely. There was no hurry now, no urgency.

There was no need to conquer, no reason to hurt. What was

important was to possess this woman completely.

When he was finally inside her to the hilt, he fucked in

and out of her clasping hole. He was not necessarily

gentle, but he did not want to tear her apart either. He

grunted into her ear when he came, filling her back passage

with his spunk. He wasn’t sure if she came or not. It

wasn’t important right then.

He pulled out with a soft ‘plok’. The acrid smell of feces

drifted up between them. He grinned, thinking that he

would always think of this moment when he took a shit from

now on. It was not an unpleasant prospect.

He retrieved the riding crop from where it lay. Karin was

back in her own world now. The ass-fuck had not hurt her,

not like it could have. She had not found this one that

enjoyable, but she was there for his pleasure. She cried a

little when she felt him spurt his seed in her rectum,

because now he would leave her. She didn’t fear what would

come next. She just missed him inside her.

She was not aware of the stripes rising along her back

until they reached her kidneys. She was being thoroughly

flayed as he worked his way up her back. By the time he

had reached the midpoint, he was hard again, hard enough to

take her. He methodically finished pummeling her back from

her sacrum to the shoulders.

He dropped the whip and entered her once more. This time

his prior deposit eased his entry. This time he did not

hold back. His fucking was frenzied, frantic, maniacal.

He was a madman, a throwback to earlier times. He grunted

and howled as he took his pleasure in her hanging, beaten

body. The primitive urges that overtook him would have

shamed him at any other time. They were the urges that

civilization made laws against, to prevent moral decay.

These urges he vented on her defenseless body until, once

again he released his cum into her with a howl that set the

hairs on her arms on end. It was the call of the wild and

she responded to it.

Karin had felt the blows coming higher on her back and had

flipped her head back and forth. Not in pain, but to clear

her long hair from her back, giving him a clear shot. She

urged him on, willed him to sate himself on her body, in

her body. She did not feel the pain anymore, not even the

aches in her arms. She could feel the thud and hear the

slap as the crop landed solidly on her back, but there was

no stinging pain. She knew in the back of her mind that

her brain had shut down to protect itself, but she wondered

why she was still conscious. Who could she ask who would

know?

When he entered her a second time, she was ready for him.

She relaxed her anus as much as she could to ease his

entry. She pushed back as much as she could with each

forward thrust of his pelvis. When he came, so did she, in

a satisfying quiet flutter of her pelvic muscles. In a

way, it was the best orgasm she had ever had. It had been

for his pleasure, and because of his pleasure. It pleased

her that he had found satisfaction in her again.

Sam stood back and looked at the figure hanging there. In

the dying light of the day, the red blotches looked less

angry, the raised purple welts looked black. As he took a

moment from answering the call of the primitive urges, he

examined her back and buttocks for breaks. There were

none. She would hurt, but she would not be scarred.

In the silence, he moved up behind her. His intentions

were just to hold her, to quiet her down, then, perhaps, if

she would have him, make love to her. He had had his

fantasy. And more. He reached around her and held her

lightly, not putting too much pressure on her inflamed

back.

Karin felt him there. She knew, somehow, he was not

finished. There was more in him, more anger, darkness,

something. He needed to release it, to find his limits,

too. To relish the release of his dark side, and savor the

taste of it. She needed it, too. She felt his limp cock

up against her butt. It took every ounce of will power and

muscle control she had, but she pressed her tender ass back

against that slick smelly cock. Slowly she enticed it to a

turgid state, half hard, half soft. Feeling her efforts

paying off, she redoubled them, becoming almost frantic,

begging for more from him. He left tears on her shoulders

as he moved back from behind her.

There was no place else to attack her luscious body but in

the backs but her legs. He was not unfamiliar with

whipping lower limbs, but he was tired. He needed to be

extra careful not to hit the tendons in the backs of her

knees. He decided the best approach was to go down one,

the back up the other. So he beat her that way, using a

backhand/forehand cycle. Only the fastest moving part of

the riding crop, the tip, met her taut flesh. Deep red

welts rose up in a herring bone pattern down one thigh,

across the knee, down her long calf to her heel.

His cock was hard again, much to his amazement. He had

never been able to perform like this. She incited him,

inflamed him, inflated him as no one had. He was beyond

his fantasies now. Her remaining unblemished skin drove

him on like an unfinished work of art. Meticulously he

matched the stokes on the first leg, duplicating them in

reverse order on the other. He ended with two stokes, one

to her outer thigh, the other splashing in the flow of cum,

her cum, running down her legs.

Throwing the crop out into the clearing in front of the

cabin, he took her again. Again, he took her in the ass.

This time he took her soul, her very being and made it

sing. They moved together, joined in that obscene,

depraved union until he emitted his essence into her once

more. He stayed embedded within her long after he had cum,

her compressions and spasms holding him captive. She

seemed to cum forever, the spastic clenching on his raw

prick seeming beg him for more. They stayed together like

that until he realized she had fallen asleep, hanging from

her wrists on the front porch. He pulled out of her still-

clasping anus, sat down on the rough-hewn floor, and

watched his lady love drift into dreamless sleep.

It had been better than any fantasy he had ever had. He

tipped his head back against the wall of the cabin, deep in

thought.

Chapter 8

The first rays of the sun peeked over the cabin, dulling

the darkness with a muddy light. The stars winked out of

sight behind the bluing sky.

Karin lurched awake with a small cry. Her chin had settled

on her sternum as she slept and the spittle from her mouth

had run down between her breasts. The rivulet of moisture

chilled her as it dried in the early morning mountain air.

She went to wipe up the dribble off her chin, but her arms

wouldn’t move. The memory of the night before came rushing

back to her. She opened her eyes and looked at her hands.

She was still suspended from the rafter on the porch.

As she slowly came awake, she took stock of the changes in

her condition from last night. The gag was gone. She was

not hanging freely as her feet were resting on one of the

benches from the porch. What surprised her most was that

there was no pain in her back, her legs or her ass. If she

were not still hanging where he had put her the evening

before, she might have thought it was a dream. But it had

been real. Her vaginal muscles still twitched, as they had

all night long, the nerves firing randomly as they tried to

catch up to the intensity of what she had been feeling.

The was only so much adrenaline to go around, though, so

they stored up their impulses and then fired later as her

body labored to fill in the backlog of adrenaline.

Sam had heard her cry out as she came awake. He had

debated long and hard about leaving her strung up, but in

the end, her peaceful slumber was the deciding factor. She

needed to rest to allow her body to recover from what she

had gone through.

He had removed the ballgag and placed the bench under her

feet. Then he had taken a moist towel and cleaned her up,

drying her with a big fluffy towel so she wouldn’t chill in

the night air. After she was clean, he took some salves he

had had specially made up. One of the other men in the

‘Presidents Club’ was a major pharmaceutical manufacturer.

His research facilities were able to combine the right

ingredients to get the effect Sam wanted. He didn’t know

what was in the stuff, but it did what he wanted.

The salve he had put on Karin’s back reduced the pain,

primarily. It had antibiotic properties, incase one of the

wounds broke open. It also reduced any swelling.

Consequently, Karin looked like shit from the back, but she

felt a lot better than she looked. He knew she still

needed the time to heal, but wanted to wait to see how she

reacted before coddling her, as he knew she would claim he

had done.

Karin felt his touch as he came up and stood behind her.

She automatically spread her feet on the bench, widening

her ass cheeks to give him access.

“Good morning, Karin. How are you feeling?”

“This slave feels glorious, Sir. Thank you for asking.

And...”

“Yes?”

“Thank you for last night, Sir. I hope I did not

disappoint you. I should not have fallen asleep. I

promise to do better next time.”

Her words shook him. It had not been a game to her. She

was still his slave, still acting or pretending to be. Or

she thought he had really meant that that was what he

wanted of her. He was silent as he rested his head on her

shoulder. She turned her face to his but couldn’t focus

her eyes because of his nearness to her.

“Karin. You were wonderful. Beyond my wildest hopes and

dreams. I have never had a night like last night.”

“I am happy for you, Sir. I, uh, I enjoyed it, too.” Her

head tipped over to the side and rested up against his.

“Sir? I, uh, ummm.”

“What is it, Karin?”

“Well, I, uh, well, are we, umm, are you going to do me,

Sir? I mean, well, it’s OK and all, but, uh, if you

aren’t, you may want to move your feet before I, ummmm,

well, Sir, I have to go real bad.”

With two ‘clicks’ her wrists were freed from the rafter.

He caught her in his strong arms as she collapsed, her

ankles and knees refusing to hold her weight. He managed

to grab the roll of toilet paper that hung on its customary

nail on the porch rail and headed with her into the brush.

He found a clearing and gently settled her into a crouch.

She rested on her haunches, her feet and knees spread wide.

He crouched in front of her, holding both her hands in his

to give her support so she wouldn’t keel over backwards.

She was embarrassed by his scrutiny at first and couldn’t

release the fluid in her bladder. As he continued to hold

her and look into her eyes, a tiny hissing indicated the

release of the urine.

His eyes turned downward, his curiosity overcoming his

control. She urinated for several moments during which

time he watched her genitals intently. When she was done,

he gathered both her hands in one of his. He took several

sheets of tissue and blotted her dry. He looked back up at

her to see she had blushed a deep crimson at the intimacy

he had taken with her.

He helped her stand up. Her legs seemed able to hold her

now. He took the shovel he kept in the clearing and turned

the soil so the wet tissue and the damped ground were

buried. The bacteria in the soil could break down the

faster when it was covered. And it didn’t blow all over,

either.

“Are you finished?” he asked her.

She looked at him quizzically.

“Number two? Do you have to poop, crap, shit, build a dung

heap, dump a load, float a log...?”

She was laughing as he tapered off. Her musical laughter

was infectious and soon he was grinning, too. He had been

trying to be so serious.

“No, I don’t. Not yet, anyway. But if you want to wipe

that, too, I can try...” she said coyly.

He growled at her in mock anger and swept her back up in

his arms. She wrapped her arms around his neck and

snuggled into his broad chest. As he started back to the

cabin, his foot caught an errant root and he stumbled

slightly. She tightened her grip around his neck. He

caught his balance and stopped, swearing quietly under his

breath.

“Sir?”

“Huh, what?”

“I think I can walk, Sir. You do not need to carry me.”

He looked at her serious face. His mood softened. “I

know, Honey. But I want to.”

He stood there quietly for a moment staring at her face,

memorizing its shape, the color of her eyes, and the

innocence he saw there. She watched him looking at her,

nervous at first. A lingering kiss to her nose, then one

to each of her eyes, then one in the center of her forehead

brought a contented sigh from her and she relaxed under his

inspection.

She peeked out of one eye, squinting up at his face to see

if he was still looking at her. He was. With an impish

wiggle, she cleared her throat.

“Uh, Sir?”

“Yes, Honey?”

“Ummm, I could go pee again. If you wanted to play with me

down there again, that is...” She squeezed both her eyes

shut tight, not wanting to see his reaction. She missed a

very adolescent blush, she having caught him out on an

irresistible impulse. It had been a spur of the moment

thing that, in retrospect, was probably not the thing to

do. He decided to play along.

“Uh, yeah, I’d like that.” He set her down and positioned

them as they had been before. This time he did not look at

her face, just down at her cunt. Karin worked for about

three minutes before a tiny dribble emerged.

“That’s it?”

“Yes. I’m sorry, Sir. I’ll do better later. After

breakfast...?”

He blotted her dry again, this time spending more time than

necessary fondling her. Her breathing was ragged when he

finished.

“Hmmm. I can’t seem to keep it dry. It seems to be

seeping something from down here.” He emphasized his point

by inserting his finger into her damp pussy. She gasped at

his invasion of her but stayed as she was, with her knees

spread wide to give him access. He fingerfucked her until

her eyes rolled up into her head. She shuddered

satisfactorily.

Sam helped her up, and she stood, weaving from side to

side. He turned and started up the path.

“Sir!” came her panicked voice from behind him.

He turned and saw her leaning heavily against a convenient

tree. He cocked his head, silently asking her what was

wrong.

“I-I-I-I’ll take that offer of a ride, if it’s still open.

My legs don’t seem to want to work...” Her voice tapered

off as she started to slump to the ground.

He reached out and caught her before she hit the ground.

He lifted her again and carried her limp form to the cabin.

There he gently laid her on the cot. She felt his tears as

they ran down his face and dripped on her naked body. She

felt a certain sadness he was crying for her, but her

lassitude wouldn’t let her generate the effort to show she

cared.

Over the next 24 hours, she allowed him to care for her

completely, even letting him clean her ass without comment

when she had to shit. He did not make love to her that

night. He wrapped her in his arms and rocked her back and

forth in his big chair all night long. She was feeling

much better by then, but he didn’t trust that either of

them would be able refrain from sex if they were both in

the cot. As it was, her soft hand worked down into his

shorts and claimed his cock as her own. She would not give

it up after numerous attempts by him to dislodge her, but

she did tacitly agree not to stroke him or make him cum.

She slept with his hardened cock firmly in her grasp. He

was amused to see that even in her REM state she kept her

grip on him. He wondered what she was dreaming of.

Sam caught a couple of hour rest that night. He woke with

a guilty flinch. He looked down to see her looking up at

him.

“Good morning, Karin. How are you feeling this morning?”

“Good morning, Sir. I, uh, I’m fine. Really. This time I

am.” She was gnawing on her lower lip, a sign he was

beginning to recognize. She wanted to ask him something

that meant a lot to her.

“What is it, Honey?”

“Huh? Nothin... Oh!” She jumped as he slapped her

lightly on the rump.

“Truth. No lies, OK?”

She buried her face in his chest as she nodded. It took

her some time for her to continue. “Sir. You said you

would, uhm, you know, that we would, uh, ...shit!” She

glared up at him. “You said you were going to fuck me.

Are you ever going to? Uh, sorry. ...Sir?” She tacked on

his title a bit late. He let it go, given the question.

“You have been through a lot. I didn’t want to push you

too much.”

“I was ready last night, Sir. I tried to let you know by,

you know, this.” She rubbed her hand up and down his

shaft.

“I wondered about that. But I must admit I liked the

feeling of sleeping in your grasp all night long. It could

be habit forming.” He grinned.

“I liked holding you, too, Sir,” she said shyly. “I could

feel your heart beating. It felt warm and nice.” She

looked up at him. “Well...?”

He threw up his hands in mock surrender. “Oh, hell. If I

<have> to, I guess we’ll just get it over with.” She fell

to the floor with a squeal as he stood abruptly. She was

still squealing as he carried her over to the soft double

bed and laid her down. Stripping quickly, he got into next

to her. She squealed for a long time that morning and into

the afternoon.

Karin lay on her side, her head resting on her lover’s

chest. The minor twinges of pain from her bruises

forgotten. She had finally been fucked. Sure they had

done it before, that first night, but he had held back.

This time she knew she had taken all he had to give. He

was so big and strong he had to hold back with other women.

With Karin, he could let go, fuck her long and hard,

without the fear of injuring her. Not that she was built

like a tank, far from it. But she had substance and

endurance in her trim frame.

She twirled the tiny strands of hair on his chest around

her finger. As she passed his nipple, she flicked it with

her fingernail. He groaned in his sleep. The little nub

of flesh stood up and begged for more. She leaned over and

kissed it, sucking it into mouth. She chewed on it

lightly. That brought more groans from him. Blowing on

the moistened nipple resulted in his hand slapping sleepily

at the pesky irritant. She captured his hand in hers and

laced their fingers together. It fit nicely.

“Don’t think I’ve ever been woken up as nice as that.” His

voice came quietly from above her head.

They lay in silence, contented, sated. They were both

aware time was flying by and that this idyllic trip would

soon be over. Neither wanted to talk about that.

“Have you ever been tied up before, done this kind of thing

before?”

“No.” She decided to skip the brutal rape by Bill and

Bruce. She could tell him later, and she knew that wasn’t

what he meant. “I’ve only tied myself up with some ropes

and stuff. But it never feels right, because I always have

to leave a way out. That kind of ruins it.”

“Oh.” He thought a moment. “What about the painful

stuff?”

“That just seems to be a part of it, I guess. I like not

being able to do anything. Which means you can do

anything, everything you want. The pain isn’t that bad.

It makes the feeling of being helpless so much more

intense.” She thought a minute. “You know, you could have

tied my feet last night. I wouldn’t have minded.”

“I know. But you didn’t kick you feet. I was ready to.”

“Oh. OK. I guess I’ll just have to kick you next time,

then.”

“Ouch!” This last was due to a double assault on his

senses. She had kneed him in the thigh as she had pulled

several chest hairs out by the roots.

“Ohhhh!” Karin suddenly found herself sitting on the cold

stone floor.

Sam growled ferociously as he grabbed her arm and dragged

her to one of the cabin’s main center posts. There were

four large posts in the large room, widely spaced in a

square, holding the roof up. This post was not too near

the fire, but was close enough to warm them both. The

flickering light from the open stove cast a dancing satanic

light on the salacious proceedings. Twilight was falling

outside the cabin.

He made her stand with her back up against the rough wooden

post. Going around behind her, he grabbed her wrists and

tied them tightly behind the post. He picked up a short

broomstick and shoved it between the post and her elbows,

forcing her back to arch and her chest to stick out. Her

breasts stood proudly on display in this forced posture.

He passed a loop of rope around each end of the stick.

Slowly he worked her elbows together until they touched.

He tied off the loops, keeping her stressed joints

together. This forced her tits to jut out even more.

He knelt down at her feet. Her high heels were lying

there. With a wicked grin, he slipped them on her feet,

then readjusted her tied arms behind the post to

accommodate her new height. Her feet pointed down at an

extreme angle that shaped her calves, thighs and butt.

Kneeling again, he tied a rope tightly around her ankles,

first binding them together, then fastening them to the

post. A rope binding her knees in a similar fashion

followed.

He took care with the ropes, tying her tight but not

dangerously so. His loops and knots were neat, the white

cotton fiber making a pleasing patterns as he bound her.

Karin’s cunt started creaming, her fantasy was coming to

reality. It was even better this way. Tears of joy

streamed down her face and dripped on her tits as she

watched him labor on her restraints. She had to strain her

head far forward and peek between her swollen globes to see

him working.

He glanced up and saw her tears. A shocked look crossed

his face and her started to stand up.

"No! No, don't stop! Please! I've dreamed of this

happening and now it is. It's OK, really." She gave him a

teary smile. Her sniffle didn’t help convince him.

He looked up at her for a long moment. "OK. Tell me what

to do. Help me make it good for you, OK?"

She leaned back her head against the post and sobbed in

joy. He jumped to his feet and nearly tripped on the ropes

on the floor. The look on his face and his actions struck

her as humorous and she started to giggle. Then laugh. He

joined in with her and the tensions eased between them.

Finally catching her breath, she said,

"First, kiss me."

"OK, I can do that"

"Hard."

"Oooh, I see. And long?"

"Yessss, Sir!"

He spent several minutes kissing. He kissed not just her

mouth, but her ears, nose, chin, eyes and neck.

"OK, now what?" They were both breathing heavily. The

thought of tying her up so completely was turning him on,

too.

She instructed him to tie the ropes around her calves and

mid thighs, in addition to the ones around her ankles and

knees he had already tied. They weren’t necessary, she

just liked the feeling of the ropes. Twice she made him

tie the ropes tighter, cutting into her flesh and molding

her upright to the post.

She had him tie a thick rope around her waist, but not

around the post. The rope cut into her soft waist. Then

she had him show her all other ropes he had. She selected

the thickest, roughest fiber rope he had.

When she told him what to do with it he looked dubious.

She repeated her instructions, reassuring him that it would

be OK.

Sam forced the end of the rough rope between her thighs,

just under her pussy. The stiff sharp fibers that made up

the rope scraped and irritated the tender skin of her inner

thighs as it was pulled through to the back. She hissed

out her breath as the rope was pulled up against her

crotch. Her asshole and pussy lips flamed with the fiery

touches.

He tied the rough rope tightly to the waist belt in the

small of her back. He forced the knot of the rope in

between the post and her back so that the rough rope was

centered down her ass crack.

Looking her directly in the eye, he grasped the end of the

rope dangling in front of her. He pulled it up steadily,

firmly embedding the scratchy rope against her cunt lips.

"Harder," she gasped.

He pulled it up tighter.

"More!"

He gave a it sharp jerk. Her eyes rolled up into her head

as the rough rope pushed aside her protective outer lips

and rubbed directly on her hooded clit. Soon, it, too, was

under direct assault from the sharp fibers as it swelled

out of its protective casing.

"AAAAAARRRRRRRRGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHH. Oh SHIT, OH YES, YES,

YES, YES!"

Sweat broke out on her forehead from the force of her cum.

A weak smile greeted his bewildered eyes. He would never

have thought of that insidious feature.

Her hips move tentatively against the crotch rope. She

would be rubbed raw in a short time. She stopped her

movements short of her climax.

"Now do my boobs," she said.

She told him how to tie off the spongy orbs from her chest

with thin cords, making them stick out even more and

slightly askew. She saw his growing fascination with them

as he tied them. She decided against the second banding

around the center of the bulging spheres.

The tension in her crotch was phenomenal. She was

completely restrained at last. Her hips moved back and

forth rhythmically as she lost her battle with her self-

control. She popped off with a major climax almost at

once.

He waited until she was done.

"What happens next?" he asked.

"That’s up to you, Sir,” she said, slipping back into her

slave mode. “Now it's your turn. You seem to enjoy

whipping me,..." She looked awkwardly down towards her

ass, protected by the post from any serious punishment.

"...but maybe you could pick another target...?"

Her stomach was bare, and her cunt was fairly accessible.

She wasn't sure which of those targets he would pick. Then

she saw his gaze linger and fixate on her breasts. Her

tender, swollen breasts. A shudder of anticipation went

through her body.

"Oh God, he's going to beat my tits. I don't know if I can

stand that. But look at his thing! It's so big and hard.

It excites him." These thoughts went through her mind at a

race.

"Sam?"

"Yes?" He didn’t look up at her, just stared at her bound,

jutting breasts.

"It's OK. You can whip me there. Really." She hesitated,

and then went on. "But you had better gag me. I wouldn’t

want you to stop until I've had as much as you think I

need." She looked him directly in his eye. "Please?"

He saw the fear in her eyes, and the determination.

He kissed her softly before he gagged her with a piece of

thick, soft rope. First he stuffed a small towel in her

mouth. He tied the rope around the post, holding her head

fast against the wooden post. This added to her feeling of

helplessness. Tears of fear and happiness streamed down

her cheeks.

When he was finished tying her up, the first thing he did

was to pull the sliver through the nipple the rest of the

way. It had purposely remained there through their

lovemaking. She had cum like a wild woman whenever he had

twisted it. When she felt he had ignored it for too long,

she would dig into his chest or thigh or groin with one of

the sharp ends.

He needed to remove it now because he didn't want it to

break off and permanently injure her, and with what he had

planned, it would have been broken. He cleaned her

perforated nipple with alcohol to prevent infection.

Standing in front of her, he braced himself. He wanted to

do this. It excited him. The fact that he cared about her

more than the any of the others made him want to back off

from what he was about to do. But she wanted him to do it.

He steeled himself and swung his big hand up. The

resounding slap sounded like a gunshot in the small cabin.

Her tits swung violently around her chest from the blow.

Because of her posture and the ropes, her breast tissues

were swollen and firm. The open handed blow had caught the

lower half of the right hemisphere, mashing it into the

other tit. Her eyes opened wide and she screamed into the

gag. Immediately her hips began grinding frantically

against the post, flexing against the crotch rope.

A second slap reddened the left tit to match the color

rising from the first blow. His cock was at the bursting

point. A third blow to the other tit followed quickly.

His breathing was raspy from his excitement. He was

quickly loosing reason and the animalistic glaze in his

eyes thrilled her and filled her with dread.

He walked over to the pile of equipment and selected a

heavy leather strap about three inches wide and two feet

long. Her eyes were wide with fear as she watched him move

back to her.

He paused to kiss the inflamed nipples. Then he lightly

licked the tip of her nose, licking up a teardrop that had

collected there. He savored the salty taste as he looked

questioningly into her eyes. She saw he was looking for

reassurance, so she nodded to him as best she could with

her head tied to the post. He understood her and smiled

softly, almost sadly, at her. He dried her tears with his

sleeve.

Stepping back from her, he swung the heavy strap in a wide

arch. The target this time was her smooth belly. The

thick belt smacked into her just below her ribs, curling

around her sides. A second heavy blow landed just below

the first. By the third strike, she knew he was going to

satisfy his need to beat her and she relaxed into the pain

that flooded her being. It was different this time. She

felt the pain, screaming to ease the biting stings.

A fourth and fifth stripe crossed her body. He proceeded

lower, down across her smoothly mounded lower belly. He

took nothing off the blows as he dropped his aim and the

sharp, stimulating pain coursed through her mind in a

cleansing flood. The next blow covered her cunt with

stinging leather. She came, hard, her cum juice spurting

out of her in an arc and splashing down between them on the

stone floor.

He continued to beat her down thighs and shins, letting the

fat belt wrap around her limbs to get maximum coverage.

Sweat was dripping from his face because of his exertions.

They were both breathing heavily, he from the work, she

from the climaxes she was having.

He set the strap down. As she looked at him, she could

tell by the gleam in his eye that he wasn't finished yet.

She hoped that he would continue to the end of what he had

planned, what he needed to do, and not stop short because

of her.

He went over to where he had hung his jacket and pulled out

a small leather case. Coming back, he gently caressed her

breast with the punctured nipple. It was still quite sore,

but he flicked at it until it stood painfully out from the

swollen globe.

Opening the case, he pulled out a small gold ring. Gazing

into her eyes, he threaded it through the hole made by the

wooden sliver. She inhaled sharply at the intense pain of

those nerves being battered, but kept her eyes glued to his

tender ones. She saw a tear trickle down his cheek.

He swabbed the pierced nipple with alcohol, cleaning the

newly inserted ring. The cool stinging liquid made her

wince. Her eyes grew wider when he cleaned the other

nipple. Her breath caught in her throat as he took an odd

tool from the case and fitted a sterile needle in its fat

jaws. It didn’t look familiar to her, but its purpose was

clear. It was meant to make holes in flesh.

"He’s leaving his mark on me!" she thought, closing her

eyes in anticipation.

The piercing machine was fit against her breast. The metal

of the handles was cool on her hot flesh. She opened her

eyes when nothing happened. He was looking to her for

permission. She wrinkled her nose at him and winked,

teasing him and gave him a definite nod. As definitive as

she could with her head tied to the post. His eyes lit up

and he squeezed the stainless steel plunger through her

nipple.

Her eyes widened at the incredible pain that shot through

her nipple. She screamed into the gag. Even the piercing

of the other nipple by the sliver had not hurt this much.

She fought her bonds in earnest for the first time, but

couldn’t move a muscle. She finally calmed down, reveling

in her utter helplessness.

He threaded another gold ring through this freshly pierced

button. She was breathing heavily from the experience.

Even her flexing hips could not raise the sexual tension in

her body higher, to push her over the edge. She was

exhausted, limp in her bonds. She her eyes closed and did

not see him preparing the soldering iron.

The first drop of jewel’s solder touched the split in the

golden ring and flowed into the narrow opening, sealing it

into a solid ring as it cooled. The second drop flowed

onto the second ring. It was angled a bit different, and

the hot solder met the delicate nipple tissue. Karin

didn't even jerk as she fainted from the pain.

Chapter 9

Sam had released her from her stringent bondage after she

had fainted. He didn’t want to put her through another

night of having to sleep standing up. He had massaged her

wrists and legs with his special soothing lotion he had

used before, but, as with the stripes on her back, the

marks would last for days, especially those between her

legs and cunt lips where the rough rope had rubbed the

tender skin almost raw. She was very tender in her nether

regions. The salve didn’t help when that much of the

protective layers of the skin were damaged and the nerves

almost exposed.

She stirred on the bed. He stopped what he was doing and

went over to stand by the bed. She looked up at him, the

focus in her eyes far away. A grin slowly came to her lips

when she was able to bring him into focus. He had removed

his clothes while he has whipped her and had not bothered

to dress after she had fainted. Reaching over to him, she

grabbed his prick firmly.

“More,” she said. It was neither a question nor a demand.

“More?” Sam’s voice cracked when he spoke, causing them

both to crack up.

"You promised."

"I know I did. I just want to be sure you’re OK."

She turned a defiant eye to his tender one. "You

promised!" she repeated, this time emphatically. “You

promised you would fuck me after.” She looked up at him

and he could see the desperation in her eyes. “Pleeease?”

He sighed as he lay down beside her on the bed. His hands

floated over her body, slowly arousing her, bringing her to

the edge repeatedly. His lips suckled at her tits, his

tongue flicking over the gold rings. It was a novel

sensation for her, and it drove her to the brink as easily

as his feathery touches to her raw clit.

When he took her, he treated her with extreme care. It was

much too gentle for her taste. She eased her body out from

under him and pushed him over on his back. Her sore

muscles screamed at her actions but she was determined to

have him her way. She lifted her leg up and over his torso

and settled down over him, straddling his hips. She froze,

squeezing her eyes shut. It hurt so good she almost

fainted.

Karin laid her palms on his shoulders and pressed down,

resting on her straightened arms. She kept her eyes closed

and breathed deeply several times, willing the pain into

the background. He lay still under her, his prick nestled

between her pussy and his body. She had not yet gotten to

the point of sliding back and inserting him into her pussy.

Even so, he was amazed at her determination and stamina to

get this far. Against his dominant instincts, he decided

to let her set the pace this time. He was completely

satisfied with their trip so far, having satisfied his dark

needs for inflicting pain and domination. This rest was

gravy for him.

With a catch in her breath, she raised her pelvis up off

his stomach. She reached beneath her, feeling between

their bodies. She carefully positioned his fat cock head

against the tight opening of her cunt. She pushed back

firmly, crying out to the darkened gloom, and fully seated

herself on his saddle horn. Pleasure mixed with pain

flooded her senses as she was filled with his hot pulsing

meat.

Karin just sat there for the longest time. This fucking

thing was so new to her, and his cock was so massive, she

still needed time to adjust to it filling her. When he was

inside her, deep and hard as he was now, she could think of

nothing else. She could feel nothing else. The fullness,

the completeness pushed all other feelings out of her mind.

She blushed as she realized that when he filled her, she

became a cunt. Just a cunt. A living, throbbing hole that

needed to be satisfied. She could feel his slow steady

heart beat through his prick, a drummer in counterpoint to

her own rapid beat.

Giving in to base urges with a groan, she rocked back and

forth on his erection, establishing a rhythm that matched

the beat of her inner drummer. Sam lay passive beneath

her, content to be along for the ride. He kept a close eye

out for any signs of distress in her, however. It took a

lot away from his enjoyment, but he felt responsible that

she not be injured.

Karin opened her eyes and saw his concerned, but happy

face. She leaned forward to kiss his forehead, then his

eyes, then his nose and finally his lips. As she kissed

him, her dangling tits brushed up against the hairs on his

chest. The over-sensitized buds sent thrills coursing

through her as she shimmied her shoulders to sway her

breasts sexily over his chest as they kissed.

Breaking the kiss, she burrowed her face into his neck.

"Thank you," came her muffled voice.

"You're welcome!" he answered, then asked, puzzled, "For

what?"

She pulled his hands up to cup her breasts, the gold nipple

rings burning into his palms form the heat between them.

"For these."

“Oh? Why is that something to thank me for?" He was

teasing her, but wanted her to verbalize what she was

thinking.

"Because I'll always have these to remember our time

together. Even when the aches and pains are gone, I will

have these. So, ‘Thank You, Sir.’"

"Oh. OK."

"Sir?” she asked a little later.

He nodded for her to continue.

“Sir, I know your name isn't Sam, but that's OK with me. I

really don't need to know. It sort of adds to the

mystery." She continued, twisting his chest hairs around

her finger. She was fascinated with them. "If you need

me, you know who I am and where I live. I want you to know

that you will always be welcome there, even if you just

want to talk. I'd love to visit the cabin again, anytime

you want .... or need." Her fingers dug into his

pectorals, emphasizing her last point.

He felt shamed and elated the same time. He had not

planned to reveal his identity to her. It was a sort of

tradition. The members of the President’s Club had agreed

that when they brought ‘special’ dates, the dates were not

to know any of their identities. Special dates, which

Karin had been, sometimes experienced unexpected advances

from their escorts. Sam always made sure each woman he

escorted to the annual event knew what to expect before

they engaged in anything. He also stopped at the first

refusal to continue, but some of the others members of the

Club had been known to get a little out of hand. Sam was a

firm believer that ‘No’ meant ‘No.’

He had not heard that particular word on this phenomenal

weekend. Karin had refused him nothing, at great cost to

her body. He had used her in every way possible. He had

marked her with his own nipple rings. Yes, she was a

special girl, but not the kind he had thought initially.

He had taken, but not given in return. She had nailed his

sexual needs on the head and accepted them. Hell, she had

encouraged him to break through his own fears about his

dark obsession and to accept it himself. Now she was

giving him the future. No questions asked. No demands.

It was an uncomfortable moment. He wasn’t sure if she

wanted him to say something. He was afraid if he did open

his mouth, he would end up professing his undying love for

her. As much as he felt that was the truth, he also knew

that these weekends were highly charged emotional events.

What he felt now, he might not feel next week, next month,

next year. He had only just met her, and, well... Oh,

SHIT! It sounded just as empty to him the second time when

he reviewed it. It was as obvious a rationalization as he

had ever heard. He was glad he had not said anything.

Sam laid his head back on the pillow and closed his eyes.

Her pussy was still milking his prick as she lay on top of

him, watching his inner struggle as it played out on his

face. She had hoped, well, that she would at least find

out his name. It had been worth a shot. She could always

just think of him as ‘Sam’ until he decided to tell her his

real name. What was important now was that their time

together was quickly ending. She wanted to make the most

of it.

She latched on to his chin with her sharp white teeth,

shaking her head like a terrier. With her arms, she

grabbed him to her soft breasts. She stretched her legs

out straight behind her. Rolling onto her side, a firm

grasp on his cock with her hungry cunt, she whispered to

him, her manner urgent, "Fuck me, Sam, Fuck me hard!"

He completed the roll she had started and settled her on

her back. He leaned on her pelvis heavily, wanting to

irritate the raw flesh there. She lifted her knees to her

chest to give him even greater access to her pussy, daring

him to do his worst, or best, to her. Incited, he reached

down, grabbed her ankles and bent them up beside her head.

Her positioned lifted her hips off the bed, and put her wet

canal in a perfect line with his raging cock. When he

drove down into her cunt with all his weight, he bottomed

out and stretched her cunt wall to a new size.

He kept his promise to fuck her hard, and long. He had

come several times over the course of the last three days.

Although his prick was rock hard, he felt confident that he

was going to be able to draw this last fuck out for a long

time.

It turned out to be not as long as he had hoped. Her

magical cunt muscles began squeezing and milking his prick

as soon as she began to climax. She screamed out her

ecstasy with each peak lasting several minutes. Before

long, her sexual excitement infected him and he began to

pump his final load into her, his rod swelling as he

peaked. He grunted and stiffened as she screamed for him

to empty his spurting cock into her. Spent, he collapsed

on her sweaty body. His deflating prick slipped from deep

inside her body. Sadness settled over the two lovers at

the climax to their time at the cabin. It had truly been a

special time. They held each other tightly, even as they

drifted into a sound asleep.

Sam and Karin drove back to the city in sated silence early

the next morning. They had made love once more, but it had

been almost an anti-climax. The urgency was gone, both of

their compulsions had been satisfied, for the moment, at

least. Sam had brought along loose sweat shirt and sweat

pants for her to wear back to the city, correctly guessing

that those soft loose garments wouldn't irritate her skin.

At first light, Karin had teased and dared him into the icy

waters of the pool before they left for the city. They had

skinny dipped like innocent teenagers, splashing and

dunking each other with wild abandon. She was strong

enough to give him back as good as she got. When he broke

through the icy surface, gasping for air after she had

dunked him again for the umpteenth time, he cried ‘uncle.’

Staggering ashore, they collapsed on the bank in peals of

laughter. He had never enjoyed himself more at the cabin.

His cellular telephone started ringing as soon as he came

into range of a cell. That was a bad sign. He had had his

secretary reschedule all of his meetings indefinitely. She

was one of the few former visitors to the cabin and

understood there was no schedule, no timetable for these

things. That someone needed him urgently enough to auto-

redial his cell phone could only mean a major international

client was in big trouble. That’s all he dealt with, the

major accounts.

His mind switched automatically to business mode as he hit

the Send button to answer his phone. Karin sat beside him

quietly as he drove, listening quietly, not interrupting.

She knew she didn’t have to tease or pester him for

attention like an adolescent would have. She sensed his

affection for her. When he was ready, when he needed her,

he would come back to her. He hadn’t said so in so many

words, but she knew.

She closed her eyes, listening to his side of the

conversation. “...I’ve been out of town. Personal. ...

No, no, I’m fine. Never better, in fact. .... Hong Kong?

.... Ouch! ... That bad, huh? ... Have my secretary go

to my apartment and pack a bag. ... Yeah, she knows, she’s

done it before. Knowing her she’s already there waiting

with it. ... Yes, she’s that good and, no you can’t have

her. ... The flight leaves in 45 minutes? ... Well, if I

push it, I can just make it. ... Right. ... Talk to you

from Hong Kong.”

Just as he finished speaking, they pulled up in front of

her apartment. She leaned over, gave him a quick peck on

the cheek, and said, “Go on now. I know you’re in a

hurry.” She jumped out of the car and closed the door

before he could say a word. His mind was already on the

disaster he was going to have to deal with. He knew there

was something he wanted to say to her, but she was gone and

out of the car before he had a chance to get his mind in

gear. He waved good bye to her and grinned as she mouthed

‘Thank You’ as he drove out of sight.

He was about 10,000 feet in the air when it came to him.

“Shit!” he exclaimed, causing the first class attendant to

spill a drink on the squalling brat two rows up. He had

intended to tell Karin his name. He made a note to tell

his secretary to contact her. She would understand. She

had been there before.

At the same time the flight attendant was dousing the

passenger, Karin was echoing his 'Shit,' albeit under her

breath.

She had walked up to her apartment. The future looked

bright. For the first time in her life, she felt loved.

She had found a man, her man, and he needed her. She

wandered aimlessly around the apartment, running her hands

over the leather chair they had put to such good use. She

could still see the crusty stains of their mingled cum

juices. She found herself in the bedroom, tightly holding

onto the homemade whip and absently snapping the

clothespins when the knock came at the door.

She opened it with a wide smile, thinking her ‘Sam’ had

thrown his career out the window and had come back to ride

off into the sunset with his true love. The smile faded,

as she looked at the two large men in ill-fitting blue

suits standing at the door. Each was holding up a badge.

“Mrs. Saunders? Mrs. Karin Saunders?” the taller of the

two asked her.

“Yes, I’m Karin Saunders.”

“Ma’am, I’m Sgt. Wilson, this is Sgt. Hague. We’d like you

to come downtown with us to answer some questions.”

Karin had never had any contact with the authorities. She

didn’t ask why, she didn’t even think of refusing. She

simply sighed, stepped into the hallway, closing the door

behind her, and went with the two officers.

An hour later, she sat in the interrogation room in shock.

From the gist of the questions, she had pieced together

that something had happened to Bill. She had been so

relieved it hadn’t been Sam. But they kept hounding her

and hounding her for where she was the last four days, why

had she moved out of the house, who did the apartment

belong to, and on and on. The tall man did all the

talking. The other one, the older one, just stood against

the wall, glaring at her. He scared her.

Sgt. Wilson, the junior of the two officers, was doing all

the talking to keep his partner from loosing his badge.

Sgt. Hague had known Bill Saunders for years and considered

him a good friend. He had never met the new wife, and all

Bill had ever said to him about their sudden marriage was

that it had been a big mistake. He had called her a ‘gold-

digger.’ Bill had jokingly brushed it all off with some

raunchy comments about her insatiable sex drive or

something, which made everyone laugh and a little jealous

of him, too.

Sgt. Hague was taking Bill’s murder particularly hard. He

had not asked to be assigned to the case, in fact, he had

tried to explain that he couldn’t do a good job because of

his friendship with the victim. Their lieutenant, a real

hard-assed bitch, had noted his concern and assigned him

the case anyway. He knew better than to question her

decision. The last guy who had dared to challenge her was

still writing parking tickets. Not wishing the same fate,

Sgt. Hague had thrown himself into the case, and it had

solved itself.

A search of the house had revealed a fully stocked woman’s

closet with most of the tags still hanging from the never-

worn clothes. What they didn’t find were toiletries,

underwear or personal effects. The young new wife was

nowhere to be found. A wider search of Bill’s properties

had turned up evidence of someone living in one of the

vacant apartments in one of the unused warehouses, but a

two-day stakeout had turned up nothing. Convinced she had

fled the city they had set a trip alarm on the door on the

outside chance someone would up. In their experience,

persons who committed domestic crimes were pretty stupid

when it came to police procedures. The didn’t really think

anyone would be dumb enough to go back to their hideout.

They were surprised when the alarm had gone off. They were

even more surprised when it turned out that the intruder

who had set the alarm off was their suspect.

For the next 12 hours Karin Saunders was questioned over

and over about her whereabouts and who she had been with

the last 3-4 days. Nothing was said about why she was

there. Sgt. Hague really wanted the bitch to trip herself

up and say something incriminating. It was a surprise to

the young wife, therefore, when she was booked for the

murder of her husband at the end of those 12 long grueling

hours. She had not confessed, but in twelve hours of

intense questioning, she had never told them where she had

been, whom she had been with, no alibis, no witnesses,

nothing. Even more convincing in the minds of the officers

was the fact that she had never once, in the entire twelve

hours, asked for or referred to her husband. She had never

asked for a lawyer. To them, that told them she was

guilty, that she already knew he was dead. They had not

released the news of his death, so it had never made the

news. She knew about it, because she had done it.

Lt. Sandra Billings, the ‘hard-assed bitch,’ had watched

the last 4 hours of the interrogation from behind the one-

way mirror. It didn't look good for Mrs. Karin Saunders.

She was the only suspect, and, as her husband’s spouse and

the sole beneficiary of a multimillion-dollar life

insurance policy as well as the sole heir to his business

empire, things didn't look at all good for her at all. The

evidence the police had put together, her lack of an alibi,

well, the lady was in deep shit.

But something didn’t sit quite right. She had read the

reports as they had come in. At first, this had been just

another routine murder investigation, and it looked like it

was going to fall into the same domestic violence category

that 85% of the other murders in their city did. On a

routine visit to the interrogation area, however, she noted

something odd about the suspect. She couldn’t put her

finger on it, but something piqued her curiosity. She

didn’t leave the window until Karin was taken downstairs in

handcuffs for booking. She hadn’t contradicted her

officers’ recommendation to arrest Mrs. Saunders, but she

was convinced she was innocent.

Karin was numb, in a state of shock. She had been since

she had heard the words, ‘You’re under arrest for the

murder of William Saunders.’ Bill was dead. Sam was in

Hong Kong. She was all-alone, with no one to turn to.

She had tried to tell them everything as honestly as she

could. But she didn’t know anything. They didn’t believe

her. Especially the mean one, Sgt. Hague. She didn't

know who Sam really was, or where she had been at the ball

or where the cabin was, so she never said anything about

them. She had no alibi for her time and didn't want to go

into too many details about her recent activities. They

didn’t believe her when she explained that Bill had

arranged for her to move into the apartment.

She was fingerprinted, photographed and taken to the

women's section of the county jail, pending a hearing. It

was when she was strip-searched that the first tangible

evidence that questioned her guilt came up. Lt. Billings

had personally escorted her up to the woman’s floor. The

other female employees qualified to escort a felony suspect

were all out of the building. Lt. Billings didn’t mind.

She wanted to get a better handle on this quiet woman. She

just didn’t fit the profile.

The women's guard assigned to book her at the jail had just

been severely reprimanded for using excessive force on

another inmate, so Lt. Billings was standing just out side

the cubicle during the search. When the guard had seen the

fresh marks on Karin's body, she knew she should have

called Lt. Billings into the examination area right then.

She didn’t want anything to do with this new cunt. She

also suspected Lt. Billings of trying to set her up. She

had heard stories about the ‘iron bitch.’ Instead, she

proceeded with search, taking extra care to be gentle.

Karin’s pained cry, however, when her well-lubricated

gloved finger entered her vagina for a cavity search

brought the lieutenant into the cubicle, eyes blazing.

What she saw made her gasp. Ugly blue bruises and red

welts covered what should have been a gorgeous body from

the neck to her ankles, front and back.

The guard immediately began to protest. “It wasn’t me that

did this, Lt. Honest! I was just doin’ my job and the

cunt screamed. I even used a glove and grease and

everything. See?” She held out the soiled latex glove for

her to inspect.

Lt. Billings turned to the guard. “Oh, shut up! You

didn’t have time to do all this damage. I want you to go

get an evidence camera. Now!”

Lt. Billings had Karin stand in the classic ‘up against the

wall’ search position with her arms outstretched and her

legs spread, but this time Karin was naked. She

photographed the various bruises and rope marks on her

body. Then she posed her so she could photograph the

brutalized front areas. When she was finished taking

evidence, she tossed her prison garb on the table.

"You can get dressed, Mrs. Saunders."

Karin pulled the shapeless garb carefully over her tender

flesh.

"Sit down."

Karin sat, waiting. She was terribly embarrassed at the

exam. She dreaded the line of questions that she knew were

coming.

"Did your husband beat you?" the lieutenant started out.

Karin thought back to the scene in the basement. “Yes,

once."

“Did you report it?”

Karin looked quizzical. “No, why? Should I have?”

The interrogator ignored her questions. "Did he do this to

you then?" She indicated the Polaroid photos she had just

taken of the bruises and marks on Karin’s body.

"No, he didn’t do that to me."

"Oh. If he didn’t, who did this to you?"

"I ... I, uh, don’t know."

Lt. Sandra Billings leaned forward and examined her head

carefully for signs of a blindfold. She didn’t see any,

but that didn’t mean she hadn’t been hooded. "You didn't

see who did this to you?"

Karin answered slowly, reluctantly. "Oh, yes. I saw him.

I just don’t know who he is. He used a fake name. He told

me his name was ‘Sam’, but it wasn't really."

"How did you meet him?"

"It’s kind of a long story, lieutenant. But I guess, well,

Bill never said, but I think Bill owed him a lot of money

or something. It had to do with his business. He never

involved me in his business stuff. Until this time. Bill

just wanted me to go to a dance with this guy, Sam."

"He used you to pay a debt to this mystery man? You mean

he sold you, or your services? Like a pimp?"

"Oh, no! Well, yeah, I guess so, but it wasn't like that.

More like a date than, than that." She looked up at the

female detective. “Honest, ma’am! I’m not a prostitute!

He just needed my help. It was more like a loan, I

guess... I’m not making much sense, am I.”

“So your husband ‘loaned’ you out to this Sam character to

cover a bad debt or something, right?”

“Well, yeah, I guess. But when you put it like that, it

sounds so dirty. It really wasn’t like that. The dance

was so nice, the band was great, and Sam is a real good

dancer.” Karin sighed to herself, in spite of her

circumstances.

“Let’s stay on track here, OK? So, when you wouldn’t sleep

with this guy, ‘Sam,’ after he sprung for the dinner and

the dance, he beat you up, right?”

“Oh, no, I didn’t say that. We didn’t go to dinner.”

Lt. Billings gritted her teeth. She wished this dunderhead

could get with the program. “Right, no dinner. So, after

the dance, right? he got angry because you wouldn’t put out

him. Is that better?”

“Well, not exactly.” She flinched at the officers

exasperated glare. “He didn’t get angry at all. He was

very gentle and kind. You see, well, I kind of, well, ...”

she finally just spit it out, “... I asked him to spank me

and tie me up. He was really very gentle with me.”

Lt. Billings stared at the young woman in disbelief. “You

asked him to do this? And you call this ‘gentle’?”

“Yes.” That peculiar look of a woman in love was in

Karin’s eyes as she remembered her lover’s affections.

“This looks like more than a spanking. How did this

happen?”

“Well, after he spanked me and, uh, stuff, we went to a

place he has up in the mountains. I, uh, I made him do

this to me. It wasn’t his fault. Really, he couldn’t help

it.”

Lt. Billings just about choked on that one. "You <made>

him do this to you? Are you telling me you enjoyed this,

this, this beating?" she asked. The detective was getting

more incredulous with each new revelation.

"Oh, he didn't just beat me. He tied me up real tight -

the way I like - and he fucked me a couple of times. Oh,

and he let me suck him off, too."

"Oh, he <let> you do that, too, did he?" Even with all her

experience, she would never have come up with this story.

It just kept getting better and better. If it weren’t so

obvious that she was telling the truth, she would have

reserved her a room on the Psycho Ward.

"Uh-huh. I hadn’t ever done that before, so he let me try

it. It was nice." She blushed at her admissions.

The coloring of the suspect’s face did not escape the

questioning woman. In fact, the girl’s innocence stirred

something in her. But there was still something missing in

her story. A question they had missed. Something so

simple it was obvious. She kept on. Maybe it would turn

up. “OK. Your husband sent you on a date with this guy,

Sam, right? Didn’t he mind if you had sex with another

man?”

Karin sat stunned at that question. She had not thought of

it like that. “Uh. I’m not sure. He told me to be very

nice to Sam and do whatever he wanted. I guessed he meant

that I was supposed to have sex with him if that was what

Sam wanted. He didn’t really care if I had sex with

another man, I don’t think. It’s not like he never did.

Besides, we hadn’t ever done it together, you know, with

each other.”

“You’re telling me that you and your husband never had sex.

And you were married for six months. Is that true?”

Karin blushed again, looking down at the battered table.

“Uh-huh.”

“And you’re telling me that he had sex with other women,

and you knew about it?” The detective could smell motive

written all over this now. Her estimation of the suspect’s

innocence was taking a nosedive.

Karin blushed an even deeper scarlet. “Huh-uh,” she said,

shaking her head ‘no.’ “He didn’t sleep with other women.

He slept with other men. He was gay.”

The room was silent as this small nuclear bomb went off.

Lt. Billings stared at the weeping widow. Where had they

missed this minor piece of information? She reviewed the

data in her head. She was sure Sgt. Hague vouched for the

guy’s sexual preferences, but then again, those could be

faked in certain circumstances. Macho guys like Hague just

didn’t expect guys they liked to be gay. He could have

been easily misled. She made a note to speak to him about

that.

The detective sat shaking her head. As crazy as it was, no

one in their right mind would make up or admit to a story

like that, but the marks were fresh enough to back up her

story and give her the alibi she needed. Slim as it was.

They still needed to identify and question this ‘Sam’

character. Lt. Billings was going to question that bastard

herself.

"You know you’re going to have to stay with us for a while,

Mrs. Saunders. We’ll have to check out the things that you

have told us. You seem to have an alibi for the time, but

I can’t rule out the motive. I’m truly sorry. I will see

that you are not put in with the other inmates. I think I

know just the guard to assign to your case to insure that

you are left alone." Her face was hard as she called in

the frightened guard to the small interrogation room.

She turned to the guard. “Mrs. Saunders will be staying

with us for a while. I am making it your responsibility to

see that she is not bothered by the other guests in our

‘hotel,’ is that clear. You will report to me personally

on this. If I hear of one finger laid on this woman, it

will be your job. And you may very likely find yourself on

the other side of the bars. Is that understood?”

The frightened guard paled visibly. She had heard the

stories of the ruined careers this pushy bitch had left in

her wake. She turned to the still weeping woman, holding

out her hand to help her up.

“Would the solitary cell be OK, Lt. Billings? It’s empty

at the moment, and right beside the guard station. She

would be safe there, ma’am, if that’s fine with you?”

Sandra Billings nodded, preoccupied with some other

questions. One question in particular. On a whim, she

asked the now excited woman, "Uh, by the way, Mrs.

Saunders? Do you know if anyone was supposed to visit your

husband last weekend?"

"I don’t know. I do know he had visitors all the time when

he wasn’t traveling on business. I hadn’t lived at the

house for about two-three weeks. I was moved out just

after they beat me. He never introduced his visitors to

me, so I wouldn’t know who they were, anyway. But why

don’t you ask Bruce? He usually took care of all of those

things for Bill."

The second nuke silenced the room again.

"Uh, Bruce? Who's Bruce ...” asked the lieutenant

cautiously. It wasn’t uncommon for cornered spouses to

blame the first person to come to mind. But, she hadn’t

accused him. This was the first time this name had come

up. There were beginning to be too many suspects, now.

She continued, “... and what do you mean 'they' beat you?

I thought your husband beat you."

"Bruce, uh, I don’t know his last name. But, Bruce, you

know. Bruce is the butler. Or, at least, that's what Bill

called him. He was really Bill's lover. He lives at the

mansion. You could ask him who was there.

“Anyway, it was the two of them that strung me up in the

basement and beat me. They said it was to get me to go out

with Sam, but all they would have had to do was ask me. I

know I said that Bill beat me, but I think Bruce did most

of the actual beating," she said, defensive of her dead

husband. Karin also left out the part about the toilet

plunger handle rape.

Bells went off in Lt. Billing’s brain. A lover! A new

suspect! With a motive! Hot damn! And there hadn't been

a trace of him in the house, which meant he was probably on

the run. He had a three-day head start, but she was the

long arm of the law.

Sandra Billings picked up her cellular phone and made

several calls. By the time Karin left for her cell in the

woman’s wing, a full autopsy on Bill had been ordered, his

physician contacted, and a nation-wide search for the

missing butler had been initiated.

It took ten days, but all charges against Karin were

dropped. She had spent those ten days without speaking to

a single person. The only person she saw was the abusive

guard, who was so obsequious and solicitous, it made Karin

wince to see her come into with the cell with her tray of

food.

She left the county facility and stood on the sidewalk

outside. She had nowhere to go, and no way to get there.

Her world had been shattered by recent events.

It was suddenly very dark outside.

Chapter 10

The man known as Sam Adams held the flimsy rice paper in

his hands, careful not to let the tears coursing down his

face land on the delicate tissue. The telefax had been

sent to him by his secretary a couple of weeks after he had

headed out for Hong Kong. The trip was more involved than

anyone could have predicted and as the months passed with

deliberate slowness, he became frantic to contact the

fantastic woman he had taken to the President’s dance. But

communications through the Bamboo Curtain were sensitive

and monitored. No personal issues were ever discussed, as

the hosts, inscrutable as they were, would have taken a

personal issue and used it as a weapon against him in the

negotiations. He had seen it happen before.

His secretary had been astute enough to understand his

vague references to Bill Saunders as referring to the man’s

wife, Karin. When he asked her to check on the cabin and

to make sure it was stocked for the next winter, she

understood that he had taken Karin up there. She had been

up there herself, in Karin’s role. She knew what kind of a

bond was created between her boss and the women who went up

there with him. He needed to contact her and let her know

he would be delayed, but that he cared deeply, etc.

She did her best, but her best was hampered by a police

blackout of the information regarding anything to do with

Mr. or Mrs. Saunders. When she did find something, she was

shocked. It was a news report of Bill’s murder and the

arrest of his wife. The reporter made it sound like a sure

thing, open and shut. The timing was reported wrong in the

article, however, and it appeared as if the murder had

occurred a couple of days after he had left for Hong Kong.

Her release and the arrest of Bruce were not reported.

Because of the nature of the crime, she did not make any

more open inquiries. It wouldn’t do the bank or her boss

any good, or her, either, to be connected to a murder.

She mailed him the entire paper and a carefully worded

telefax reporting that the cabin was closed up tighter than

a jail cell and no trace could be found of anyone having

been there. After he had found the article reporting on

the murder and Karin’s arrest, he understood, or thought he

did.

He pulled out the paper every night, looking for another

meaning, trying to find his way out of his personal Hell,

this dark helplessness that held his heart. He had found

that one special woman and lost her. He cried into the

long darkness of the warm asian night.

-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-

Karin Saunder’s personal darkness didn’t get brighter

anytime soon, either.

She was very much alone. She moved back to the mansion

during the next week. The household staff had quit after

the murder. The big house was cold and empty, but at least

the delivery boys would deliver food to this address. She

had just about starved at the apartment. She couldn’t

bring herself to go out shopping, even for food.

Karin had dumped her suitcases in the middle of the

hallway, went straight up to her old room and gone to bed.

The tragedy of her total abandonment paralyzed her. She

moved like a robot, lifelessly passing between the bedroom

and the kitchen. The rest of the house seemed foreign to

her and she avoided all those unfriendly evil rooms.

Most nights she laid in her bed and cried herself to sleep,

hugging her pillows to her chest tightly. She had no

interest in sex or tying herself up. It felt dead inside,

and, to be honest, she preferred it that way. Since she

had been with Sam, and had experienced the real thing,

anything else just didn't seem enough. She knew her Sam

was out of the country, but she still missed him and wished

he were there to hold onto instead of the pillows. There

had been no word from him, not a card, flowers or anything.

She tried hard not to think about it, but her isolation

allowed her to think of nothing else.

She was sitting in her room, staring blankly out of the

window when the doorbell at the front door rang. She

waited for a while for the maid to answer it, then realized

the maid wasn't there anymore. She numbly got to her feet

and fumbled down the stairs.

Sandra Billings stood in the door. Karin did not recognize

her at first. By the time they had finally met at the

station, Karin had been nearly in a state of shock. She

had not been paying too much attention to what other people

looked like right then.

As she stared at her in the doorway, she realized that Lt.

Billings didn't look muck like a cop. It took her a

minute, but she finally put her finger on it. Her eyes

were too kind and soft. "It must be hard for her in that

place," she thought to herself as they stood staring at

each other.

"Hello. Lt. Billings, right?" she ventured.

"Hello, Mrs. Saunders. Do you mind if I come in?" Lt.

Billings was brusque and businesslike.

"Sure, I guess. Come on in. Please. Oh, and please call

me Karin. I never got used to the name ‘Mrs. Saunders.’"

She opened the door wider and moved back to allow the tall

policewoman into the house. As the officer came in, Karin

paused. "Is this an official visit?" She was suddenly

afraid, terrified of being alone in the world, alone with

this stranger in a strange house.

Lt. Billings continued into the living room and sat on a

couch. She patted the seat beside her. "Well, yes ... and

no."

Karin's heart sank. She numbly shuffled over to the couch

and woodenly sat down. She held both her wrists together

out in front of her, waiting to be cuffed. Tears streamed

down her face, but she was silent.

The female detective reached out and took Karin's hands in

hers and squeezed them. Her heart went out to the lonely

girl beside her. "Oh, no! It's not like that at all! I'm

here to tell you that we located Bruce, the, uh, butler.

Or lover. It took a bit of persuading but he finally

confessed to the shooting. We also found him hiding in a

cheap motel with several hundred thousand dollars in cash,

apparently from your husband's safe. We'll be returning

the money to you after the trial."

Karin stared dumbfounded at the woman. Suddenly, she was

ripped out of the dumps and rocketed to the heights. She

continued to cry uncontrollably as she threw her arms

around the detective's neck. The emotional roller coaster

ride she was on was too much for her to cope with any other

way.

"Oh, Thank you, thank you, thank you." She didn't know

what else to say as the free flow of erupting emotions

poured over her.

The policewoman sat quietly, holding and comforting the

beautiful lady. This next part of her visit was not

entirely official and she needed to work carefully. It was

more like answering some nagging personal issues, rather

than official police business. She was unsure of exactly

why she was here, other than she felt compelled to see it

through. She had convinced herself it was necessary, just

good police work. ‘No stone left unturned,’ and all that

crap.

Karin settled down and dried her eyes. She released Lt.

Billings’ neck and sat back down on the couch beside her,

suddenly embarrassed at her slobbery outburst. Now that

Bruce had confessed, there were some things she wanted to

know. “How was Bill murdered?” she asked the lieutenant.

“He was shot.”

"Oh. Where was he shot?" she continued.

"In the back."

Karin got a puzzled look on her face. "You mean, out back,

by the pool?"

The detective laughed, a chagrined look on her face. "Oh!

Uh, no, He was in his bedroom. When Bruce shot him, the

bullet hit him in the back." Then she added, "Don't worry

about the mess. The department has a crew that come in to

clean it all up."

"Oh. Thanks. That was nice of them." Karin felt kind of

silly for her questions. She hadn't even known Bill had

been shot. She felt a little guilty she hadn't even cared

enough to find out. Even if it had been a sham marriage,

she felt she owed him at least that much.

"Uh, Karin? If you wouldn’t mind, I would really like to

see the crime scene with you. There are just a couple of

questions I wanted to clear up, OK? Just to clear up a few

things in my mind." Lt. Billings stood up, not waiting for

her to answer, and possibly say ‘no.’

"His room is, uh, was upstairs." Karin said, leading the

way, a vague feeling of dread coming over her.

Lt. Billings looked around the room, poking into drawers

and under the bed, playing for time. She didn’t know how

to get around to what she was really here for. It was

uncharacteristic for her. Best to dive right in, no?

"Where is your room, Karin?"

"Over there," said Karin, pointing down the hall.

"Do you mind if I see it?"

Karin silently led her into her room, the feeling of doom

greater. There was no reason for her to be in here.

The detective poked around until she found what she was

looking for. "Which one of these were you wearing when

they beat you?" she asked, holding up several bathing

suits.

Karin indicated the pink one.

"Would you mind trying it on? I had some questions

regarding the beating."

The sense of dread Karin had been feeling now flooded over

her body from her head to her toes. This was suddenly not

a casual visit.

With trembling fingers Karin took the suit and went into

the bathroom to change. She stripped off her clothes and

put on the tiny suit. The shapes of the gold nipple rings

were clearly visible through the taut thin fabric. She

thought of Sam as she circled them softly with her

fingernail. A tear trickled down her cheek at the sudden

reminder of her absent lover.

She took a deep breath and went back into the bedroom. Lt.

Billings had taken off her business jacket and Karin

noticed her trim figure for the first time. The suit had

been severely cut and did not flatter her figure at all.

Karin was not sure if that was by intent or because the

woman had no sense of style.

The attractive detective was about Karin's height. She had

wandered over to her closet and was looking at the racks of

clothes in them, many of which Karin had never had a chance

to wear. Bill had just filled it with expensive clothes

her size. He hadn’t sent all these to the apartment, thank

goodness. He had only sent her everyday clothes and

makeup. She watched the other woman for a while, not

wanting to draw attention to herself.

Lt. Billings was holding a slinky red dinner dress up

against her body and looking in the mirror, swaying back

and forth to see the fit better.

"That color would look lovely on you. Why don't you try

it?” Karin offered. “I think we're about the same size."

The detective jumped up with a guilty look. She had

expected Karin to take longer changing into the bathing

suit. "Oh, no, I couldn't. Could I, really?" She had

always dreamed of being able to dress in a feminine way.

The other cops just wouldn't stand for it, however. Even

the other female cops would have been jealous. In the

interest of her career, she had intentionally toned down

her beauty and her body by using the wrong makeup and

fashions to appear as unattractive as possible. It had

worked until now, and she intended to keep it that way.

But, no one needed to know what when on here.

"Sure, go ahead!"

With a giggle, the detective stripped down to her panties

and slipped the red dress over her head. Karin stared

openly at the naked woman. Her tits were a little smaller

than her own and her hips perhaps a bit fuller, but not by

much in either place. They could have been sisters.

Twins. It was like looking in a mirror.

"Karin, could you zip me up?" she asked.

Karin moved behind the detective. Her service revolver was

lying on the table beside her. It was easily within

Karin's reach. The young woman shrank from the weapon.

She didn't notice the slight relaxation in the detective's

posture as she watched Karin's reflection in the mirror.

‘Once a cop, always a cop.’ She was still checking out

this strange, naïve woman. She had left the gun - unloaded

– out in the open on purpose. It never hurt to confirm her

suspicions. She was now convinced that Karin had had

nothing to do with her husband’s murder. There was always

the chance that she had been in it with the butler.

Karen tugged the zipper up the small of her back and Lt.

Billings did a quick pirouette in front of her.

"It’s not something I could wear to work, is it?" she

quipped.

Karen smiled. She was beginning to relax around this

strong woman for some reason. There was a familiar bond

between them, perhaps because of their height and their

beauty. She noted the slope of the woman’s breasts as they

tapered to protruding nipples. The tiny buds poked

defiantly through the thin fabric of the dress, exuding a

sex appeal that Karin found strangely attractive. She

mindlessly rubbed her thighs together as her own body

started to react to the sensual appeal.

"I-I-It's lovely on you, Lt. Billings."

"Oh, don't be so formal. Call me Sandi."

"OK, S-S-Sandi. The dress really does look nice on you.

The color really suits you."

Sandi turned back to the mirror and made a few poses. "It

does bring out my 'assets', does it?" she said, thrusting

out her chest, emphasizing her breasts with a little twist.

Karin giggled. "You'd be a hit in court.'

"I'd be arrested as a hooker!" Sandi giggled along with

her. "But I do have the body for it, huh?"

Karin reached out to touch her softly on the waist. She

had intended only to smooth a wrinkle, but Sandi had moved

at the last minute and she found her hand caressing a

tantalizingly soft buttock. A forbidden thrill went

through her. "Oh. I’m sorry. Excuse me!"

"That's OK. It felt nice."

Karin blushed.

Sandi turned to her. "Show me where it happened."

"Where what happened?" She knew what she wanted. She just

was hoping she was wrong. She wasn’t.

"Where they beat you."

Karin's heart sank. The basement. She hated the basement.

She hadn't been down there since that day. She slowly led

Sandi out of the bedroom, down the stairs to the basement

door. At the locked door she stopped and looked at Sandi.

It was a silent plea for a stay of execution.

Sandi gave her a firm smile that was meant to reassure her,

but didn’t do a very good job of it.

"Well, here goes..." she said weakly as she opened the

door. She took a deep breath and went down the narrow

stairs into the dark cellar.

Not much had changed in the room. There were still a few

pieces of furniture scattered around and some old boxes of

books and papers from Bill's business piled in the corner.

Karin led her over to the place in the middle of the open

area where they had strung her up.

"It was about here, I guess."

Sandi looked around. There were soiled strips of cloth and

cords lying on the floor where they had fallen. She picked

up a piece of black cloth.

"You were blind folded?"

Karin nodded, goose bumps suddenly erupting all over her

arms.

"May I?" asked Sandi, holding up the blindfold and moving

behind her.

"Do you have to?" asked Karin, her voice quivering.

“Uh, it, uh, helps to reenact the crime scene," offered

Sandi weakly. She didn't sound convincing to Karin, nor

did she specify whom it was going to help in this case.

There was a long silence. Finally, Karin nodded. "OK, I

guess.”

Sandi smiled as she stood behind the gullible girl. This

was going better than she had hoped. She tied the cloth

firmly in place.

"Was it like that?"

Karin nodded. A tiny bit of moisture dampened her crotch,

and her breathing quickened. He hoped Sandi hadn’t

noticed. She shuddered at the betrayal of her body. She

fought the arousing feelings running through her. It was

the same feelings she had with Sam. But Sandi was a woman.

Karin was confused. Could she feel that way about a woman?

Sandi pulled a convenient chair over to the blindfoldeded

woman. She looped one of the cords over the overhead

pipes. She noted the places where the dust had been rubbed

off before. "Another point for the dame," she thought.

"Were your feet touching the ground?"

Karin shook her head. She didn't trust herself to speak.

Sandi shuddered. "Those bastards. These cords would

really bite into her wrists with her full weight on them,"

she muttered to herself. "Well, we don't have to go that

far. That must have really hurt."

"Uh, it's OK. If it will help you and, uh, the case, I'll

do it. It’s not that bad."

Sandi detected a slight tremor of excitement in Karin's

voice. She believed she really would allow herself to be

hung like a piece of meat. She shook her head. "No, it

won't really help. Just put your arms up over your head."

Sandi thought she saw a flicker of disappointment flash

across the girl's face, but Karin obediently raised her

hands over her head as asked. Sandi looped the cord around

her wrists and started to step down off the chair.

"They were tied tighter than that."

"Oh, OK." She retied the restraints tighter. "Better?"

"Yeah, I guess."

Sandi got down off the chair and stood in front of Karin's

outstretched body. She could hardly restrain herself from

touching that delectable taut skin, running her fingers

through her hair, tracing the swirls of her body hair. She

steeled herself, slowing her rapid breathing. There would

be time enough for that later. "Then what happened?"

Karin blushed with illicit excitement. She didn’t know

what was coming over her. She just knew this was the first

time since she had been with Sam that she had felt alive.

"They pushed up my top."

Sandi's hands trembled as she slid them up to the girl’s

heaving breasts. She slid them under the thin fabric of

the bathing suit top and gently lifted the swatches up to

expose the delicious mounds. She was careful to lift the

fabric away from the gold rings that pierced the erect

nipples. The rings intrigued her. They had since she had

seen them at the station.

She caressed the soft mounds with her fingers for quite

some time, playing with them, lifting and weighing them

with her cupped hands. The rings fascinated her and she

looked at them closely for the first time. She was shocked

to see that they were solid, fused with solder. "These

babies are here to stay!" she grunted.

She kissed the now heaving breasts softly. Karin was

groaning softly at the stimulation of her tits, but had

made no signs of resistance or struggle.

"What else?"

"They, uh, they, they pushed my bottoms down around my

knees."

Sandi hooked her thumbs under the tiny string that held up

the ridiculously small bikini bottoms. Her smooth palms

caressed the creamy cheeks of the trim ass as she

maneuvered the taut string over the pleasing moons.

Going back around to the front of her victim, she slid her

hands flat down beside the trimmed pussy hair and onto the

sleek inner thighs. She felt the dampness that leaked from

the puffy slit. She slyly slipped a slender finger in the

hot cauldron and brought it up to her lips to taste it.

She was curious, as well, and as Karin couldn’t see her,

she took advantage of the moment. In more ways than one.

"God, she tastes good! I never knew..." she shuddered to

herself. Her first taste of another woman’s essence drove

her on. She wanted more.

She busied herself with the bloated lips of Karin’s tender

cunt. Manipulating her finger between the puffy creases,

she eased another finger in and found the hard bud hiding

at the top of the juncture. A massage of incredible

sensations followed until she heard the hanging girl gasp

and saw her shudder in climax.

Sandi smiled to herself. She still had some work to do,

but she wanted to get this young woman in bed. It was a

new feeling for her. She lightly touched Karin's body as

the bound girl calmed down.

"What happened next?"

"They slapped me," Karen said so softly that Sandi couldn't

hear.

"What?"

"They slapped me, on my boobs."

Sandi took a light swing at her tits.

"Harder."

She swung her hand with more force. A light red handprint

appeared on the white flesh.

"Harder!"

Sandi complied, and the attacked mammary moved across her

chest away from the blow and then jauntily bounced back.

"Harder, damn it! Harder!"

Sandi braced herself and swung with all her might.

"Yyyyeeeeesssss!," sobbed Karin. "More. Pleeeaaassseee?"

Sandi stood before the begging girl and couldn't believe

it. She was working up a sweat. She was going to ruin the

dress. This was too much work and it didn't really excite

her. But if it turned on the girl, it might make it easier

to seduce her. That was suddenly something Sandi realized

she wanted to do. That she had subconsciously intended to

do since she had first walked in and seen the stripes and

bruises covering Karin’s body.

Sandi started to hit her harder and harder still with no

complaints from Karin. Tiring, she quit and soothed the

reddened flesh with dancing fingers and her soft, velvety

lips. Karin's heavy breathing slowly came back to normal.

Sandi spied something over by the wall and went and got it.

She came up behind the hanging girl.

"Did they spank you?" she asked, knowing they hadn't.

"No."

THWACK!

"They didn't?" she queried again when the yelling had

subsided.

"No. But Sam did."

THWACK!

"I guess I should stop, then, huh?"

"Oh no, you don’t have to!" Karin thought fast, not

wanting this session to end. "If it will help you with the

case, you should keep it up as long as you want!"

Sandi laughed. They were on the same wavelength at last.

She took the Ping-Pong paddle she had picked up, rubbing

the sandpaper surface on her palm. She proceeded to swat

the rounded hemispheres until they were both a bright rosy

red. She was not sure, but she thought that Karin had

climaxed two, if not three times during the spanking. She

shivered with anticipation. This was uncharted territory

for her. Not that she hadn’t thought about it before. Or

read several books...

Sandi untied Karin's wrists from the pipes. Removing the

blindfold, she took her by the hand and led her upstairs.

Karin stumbled at first until she managed to push down her

briefs and step out of them. She removed her top on the

way upstairs and left it hanging on the banister.

Sandi gently pushed her down on the over-sized bed in

Karin's room. Slipping out of the red dress and her

panties, she laid down beside her new friend. "You really

liked that, didn't you?" she asked the quiet girl.

"Yes."

Sandi thought there was something more. "I did it because

I saw it excited you, you know. I don't usually like

violence of any kind. I get enough of that at work."

Karin nodded, tears leaking down from the corners of her

eyes.

"I'll do it again, if you want me to."

"No, that’s OK. It just made me feel sad, is all. It

reminded me of Sam, and I don't even know who he is! I-I-I

m-m-miss him so m-m-m-much!" The blubbering girl buried

her face in Sandi's bosom and wept hard.

Sandi stroked her hair, her back and her arm to comfort

her. She jumped when she felt a tentative tongue touch her

own tear drenched nipple.

"Oh, did that hurt?" asked a tiny voice.

"No. No that felt good. You can do it again, if you

want." She mentally crossed her fingers. She inwardly

groaned as Karin raised her face from her tits and looked

her in the eye.

"Sandi?"

"Yes?"

"I've never been, you know, uh, with a woman. I have some

questions.”

Getting no answer other than a surprised look, she

continued.

"Will I have to give up men if I like it?"

Sandi hugged the innocent young girl to her and burst out

in uncontrollable giggling. Karin had gone through this

before, and it was no more amusing to her this time than

last.

Sandi finally got control of her giggles and kissed Karin's

forehead. “I don’t intend to give them up, Dear. I love

men. I love to talk with them, I love to work with them,

and I love to flirt with them. Above all, I love the feel

of their hard cocks in my mouth, my pussy and my ass.

“Apparently, I am also irresistibly attracted to you. This

is new for me, too. You turned me on so much I could

hardly bear to interrogate you without seducing you. It

was only when you were completely cleared that felt I could

come here. I wasn’t sure why I came, even as I drove up

the driveway. Then I saw you at the door and knew I had to

have you. I have wanted you so much I wore out my trusty

vibrator!" They both laughed at her small joke.

Sandi kissed her forehead once more. There were tears in

Karin’s eyes that streaked down her cheeks and onto the

pillows.

Karin was quiet. "You don't have to beat me anymore, if

you don’t want to," she said finally. "Will you teach me

how to make love to you the way you like it?"

"I'll teach you how to make love the way you like it, too."

Sandi kissed her on the nose. "This isn't a chore, you

know."

"I know. I just want to please you so you won't go away

like Sam did."

Sandi expected a flood of tears at the mention of the

mysterious lover. None came. "She's more mature than I

thought," she mused quietly.

Karin continued. "I have a lot of empty rooms here.

Couldn’t you stay with me?" She hurried on. "Not as a

lover, or anything, but as a friend. Unless you wanted to,

uh, I mean, ..." She blushed, her honest offer and her

need for friendship having had an unintended, but

wonderful, double meaning.

Sandi thought over the offer. Free room and board, pool,

sauna with the works, a willing bed partner that she was

beginning to really like...Lots of possibilities.... She

could get used to this, real easy.

"Sandi?" The question interrupted her thoughts.

"Huh?"

"Were you going to show me that stuff now? Or later?"

Sandi rolled Karin over on her back and began to trace an

imaginary path down the length of the tight body under her.

"How about both," came the answer.

It was Karin's turn to giggle uncontrollably as Sandi's

delicate tongue explored her navel. She climaxed lightly

from the laughter and the tickling. That was a new

experience for her.

Karin placed her hands on Sandi's head and stroked her hair

gently. Sandi leaned into the strokes and sighed. Women

knew so much more about making love than men did. Just

soft touches and gentle pressures. The pain that Karin

could stand and still get off piqued her curiosity. "Maybe

under controlled circumstances..."

Her tongue continued to wiggle its way down the smooth

plane of Karin’s flat abdomen to the forest of hairs that

covered a pleasing mons. She twirled the hairs with her

tongue before probing deeper. The aroma of heavy musk

filled her nostrils. She breathed in deeply. The scent of

Karin’s excitement was contagious. She could feel her own

arousal dripping down her thighs. Her fingers traced the

tracks of the wetness far down the silky skin of the inner

thighs. Karin was soaking the bed beneath her ass with her

cunt juices.

The first touch of her tongue against the puffy lips

brought a shriek from Karin and a little squirt of cum

sprayed Sandi's face.

"Oh, JESUS, Oh, GOD, Oh SHIT THAT'S GOOD!" came from the

top of the bed. "Oh, Sandi, no one has ever....OH OH OH OH

OH. SHIT! FUCK! SHIT! SANDDDDIIIII!"

Never one to be cheap or hold back, Sandi had plunged her

hot tongue in to the tight box in front of her. Karin

continued to climax against the hard invader until Sandi

could wiggle her tongue no longer. Sandi was impressed.

"Maybe there’s something to all this pain shit after all,”

she thought. “If it can make her come like that, I just

may have to give it a shot. Maybe she could introduce me

to Sam, too. ....Nah, she loves Sam too much." Sandi's

thoughts suddenly drifted to a young patrolman in another

district she had dated on occasion. He had made some not

so subtle hints in that direction once or twice...

Maybe...

"Sandi! Oh, thank you, thank you! Let me do something for

you, too. Do you think we can we do it at the same time?"

"You mean '69'?"

"Sixty-what?"

"Here, I'll show you."

Sandi moved into the head to toe position favored by oral

enthusiasts.

"Like that. OOOOHHHH! You go girl!"

Karin didn't hesitate, but dived into her first pussy. Her

enthusiasm more than made up for her experience, but even

then, Sandi swore she was a natural at this.

Sandi laid back and relaxed for a moment until she felt a

pinch on her smooth ass.

"Hey! Get to work down there. You've got a job to do."

Karin giggled "Besides, there have got to be more tricks

you can show me. We've only got all night..."

They used most of it before they fell asleep in each other

arms.

The next day Sandi moved into the room next to Karin’s.

They made love occasionally - often - in fact, over the

next couple of days and nights. It seemed both of them

were trying out the limits of their new relationship.

Sandi brought a man home the first week to test it in a

different way. She watched for any signs of jealousy or

competition from Karin. The guy meant nothing to her and

Karin could have had him if she had wanted. But that

hadn’t happened.

Karin had been polite, but cool towards Sandi’s date. She

didn’t try to flirt with him or steal him from her. She

had hugged Sandi fiercely before the couple went upstairs

and told her she would sleep in the guesthouse if Sandi

wanted her to. She didn't want Sandi to be ‘inhibited’ by

the fact that she would be right next door. Listening.

When Sandi laughed and said 'No', Karin winked at her and

told her to 'Go get him, girl.'

Karin listened to the sounds of their lovemaking all night,

happy that Sandi was getting laid, and from the sound of

it, enjoying herself immensely. And often! But in the

darkness, her thoughts turned to Sam, and she softly cried

herself to sleep, on her own, once again.

Chapter 11

She continued to wander around the house for another week,

wondering what she was going to do. She felt vaguely

useless when Sandi, as she thought of her now, went to

work. They hadn’t hired any new staff, but when the three

or four rooms they used in the big house were clean, there

wasn’t much else to do. On Friday, a man, Mr. Reese, who

said he was one of Bill's lawyers contacted her. He had

some papers that needed signing, he said.

She walked into Mr. Reese's office and stopped dead in her

tracks. Something crawling up the back of her mind told

her not to trust this man. She had never had such a strong

compelling feeling before. Before she thought about what

she was doing, she acted on it. She turned on her heel and

left the ancient secretary standing there with an open

mouth.

She only knew one person to ask. She pulled out her

cellular phone and called Sandi at her downtown office.

She told her about the lawyer's sudden call that morning.

Sandi asked who the lawyer was.

"Mr. Reese, down in the Waterbury Building."

"That God-damned Mother-fuckin’ no good SCUMBAG!"

"Oh, dear! I take it you know him, then," Karin said

dryly. “A nice guy, is he?”

"Not even for a lawyer. Karin, did you sign anything?

Anything at all?" Sandi demanded of her.

"No. I didn't even see him. I got this really weird

feeling when I walked in to his office. So I called you.

Sounds like I’m glad I did, huh?"

The relief was evident in Sandi’s voice. "Thank God, you

didn’t sign anything. Good. Now, do you know any

attorneys you can trust?" She guffawed. "I take that

back. Let me rephrase that. Do you know any attorneys?"

"No. But I could probably call Bill's secretary for a

suggestion. She should know one or two that has done work

for his company before."

"Well, I guess that’s better than nothing. Yeah, why don’t

you do that. Uh, and Karin?"

"Yes?"

"When you talk to her, remember she was Bill’s secretary.

She lost her man, too."

"Oh, right."

Karin looked up the number for Bill’s office and asked for

his secretary, Sally. She remembered Sally vaguely. The

one time they had met, she remembered that Sally had been

nice to her, like she felt sorry for her. Sally apparently

knew more than she let on about Bill's sex life.

When she came on the line, Karin asked her for a

recommendation for an attorney to talk with.

Sally exploded on the other end of the telephone. "Karin –

excuse me, Mrs. Saunders, where have you been? Why haven't

you called in? Everything is falling apart down here. Get

down here right away! We need you!" she hesitated. Then

she added, a hopeful note in her voice, "Boss!?"

Karin was confused, but make her way over to Bill's office.

She was definitely going to have to get a driver’s license.

Taxis were too expensive in this city for everyday travel.

She walked into the large complex and made her way to the

executive suites. Sally had apparently spread the word

that salvation was on the way, as everyone seemed to know

her name and looked so relieved to see her. Her

bewilderment grew as men and women who were clearly senior

executives treated her with respect and deference.

Sally was on the telephone when she arrived at Bill’s

office door. Sally had her back turned, and was digging in

some files. She didn’t see her. Karin stood there meekly

waiting until Sally noticed her.

When the middle-aged secretary glanced up and noticed Karin

standing there, she paled. The phone call ended with an

abrupt; “I don’t care how you do it, just get it done!”

Shooing her hands at the small crowd of on-lookers, she put

her arm around Karin and ushered her into her dead

husband’s office. Sally sat her down on the expensive

leather couch and got her a cup of tea.

They sat staring at each other for a long moment. Karin

was never sure who made the first move, but suddenly she

found herself in a sobbing embrace with the motherly woman.

Neither woman may have admired Bill, but his absence left

large holes in each of their lives. They commiserated with

one another until they had cried themselves out. They

weren’t mourning the man. They were identifying with the

pain each had suffered from him. It was a new beginning.

Drying her eyes with the tissue provided by the motherly

secretary, Karin asked, “So what do you need me for,

Sally?”

Sally explained that there were several crucial contracts

pending that needed immediate attention, or they would lose

the business.

"But Sally, I don't know anything about Bill's business!

What should I do?

"Listen, Mrs. S, it's not 'Bill's' business anymore, it's

yours. That is, if you want it. We'll all help you learn

what you need to do," she went on. "You'll get along

fine."

Over the next several weeks and months, Karin learned about

Bill's business and found she understood more about what

she was doing than she had ever imagined. Of course, she

worked hard at it and it wasn’t easy. She knew she had to

learn the business from the ground up. Many nights she

stayed late, working a half-day with the night shift in the

factory. She rolled up her sleeves and learned how to do

every job in the factory, including sweeping the floor.

She emptied the trashcans with the cleaning crew for a

week. She may not have mastered the tasks, but she

definitely learned what her products were, how they were

made and she had a good idea of any problems there might be

in manufacturing.

Her time in the factory had other benefits. She was

astounded to find she was the first ‘suit’ most of the line

workers had seen. Ever. Even the ones with seniority

couldn’t identify the VP of Operations from a set of

photos.

She fixed that the next morning. Her new VP of Operations

spent a lot more time on the floor and less on the golf

course. Production improved tremendously following her

visits, both in quality and quantity.

Karin also learned she was good at selling the company. At

first, when customers found she was his widow, they gave

her token contracts out of sympathy. When she turned in

superior high quality products, she won the entire contract

from each of those customers on her own. They liked her

simply because she made them look good.

She discovered the company accountant and the lawyer, Mr.

Reese, had been stealing from the company. She debated a

long time before doing anything. She didn’t want to have a

big scandal with her name center stage. She asked Sandi

how to handle it. Sandi told her that if she wanted her

to, she would take care the scumbag for her. Karin would

have to take care of the accountant, as he was her

employee.

Karin fired the accountant and cash flow increased 10%

overnight. So did profits. She decided to put a positive

spin on the result and gave a 5% rebate to all her

customers with current contracts. From that point on,

there was essentially no stopping her. Over the next year

and a half, news of her revolutionary business practices

swept through their tight-knit industry. People pounded on

her door to give her their business.

Mr. Reese found himself as the center of an ethics review

by the state bar. Ostensibly, it was because his name had

been submitted as a nomination for the State Supreme Court.

The review was ‘just routine,’ or so he had been told. He

encouraged his staff to cooperate fully with the auditors.

His ego was so big, he didn’t even stop to realize there

wasn’t a position open on the bench.

As it was, the auditors, under the guidance of Sandi’s

information, and with the eager cooperation of Mr. Reese’

very own staff, put together a compelling case of fraud and

legal abuse that had gone unchecked for years. Karin’s

company was never mentioned in the investigation or the

indictment that followed. Mr. Reese went away for a long

time.

Karin worked tirelessly to be the best CEO she could be.

Her people loved her. Several times she thought of

stepping down and letting someone more qualified take over.

They objected each time that she suggested it. Karin was

such a breath of fresh air, such a change from Bill. Even

her surviving VPs had to admit they liked her, although

they soon found themselves working harder to keep up with

her.

When Karin didn't know something, she asked plain

questions. She listened to the answers her people gave

her. She never asked the same question twice. Her people

knew she was fair, but tough. That’s all they asked of

her.

She was also extremely lonely. As she rocketed to the top

of her business world, she became more and more isolated.

If it hadn't been for Sandi and their friendship, she would

have been completely alone. Sally, her secretary, tried to

mother her, and Karin let her, on occasion. But she needed

Sally to be her assistant, not her mother. She promoted

her to a Jr. VP level and gave Sally a secretary of her

own. Sally laughingly told Karin she would never forgive

her for causing her so much stress. Without Sally to

mother her, Karin withdrew into her corporate shell. She

was all business. Warm, but cold, at the same time.

There were a couple of brave men who tried to ask her out.

None asked more than once. Each said they got a severe

case of frostbite. Karin became known as the ‘Ice Maiden,’

and her reputation for success and untouchability spread.

Soon no one even thought about approaching her.

Sandi tried to get her to socialize. She asked her to

double date with her a couple of times, but Karin's blind

date always went home horny. She was a delightful date,

but her heart belonged to Sam exclusively.

Sandi had no shortage of suitors these days. She had taken

Karin's advice to dress a bit more feminine at work. She

also followed Karin’s example and sent her dates home

horny. Those few special men that did make it to her bed

did so because they were discreet. That they were also

hung like horses didn’t hurt, either, but she passed up

some whoppers because she had heard they couldn’t keep

their mouths shut.

Sandi had been afraid that she would be immediately

assigned to the Vice Squad to work undercover with her

change in wardrobe. It was a risk. She didn't want that

kind of police work. She wanted to use her mind, not her

body.

Shortly after she started 'dressing up', as she called it,

a senior level position opened up in the Commissioner's

office for an inspector. With Karin’s, and others

encouragement, Sandi put in her application. After a long

and arduous selection process, Sandi was amazed to find she

had been selected. She was qualified for the position, but

to be able to do what she had dreamed of doing all her life

was too good to be true. She kept pinching herself to make

sure she wasn’t dreaming.

Karin had met the Police Commissioner at a client’s office

unexpectedly, and surprisingly, they had hit it off. Karin

sensed immediately he was an honorable man. The shared the

occasional lunch in the city’s downtown park, the public

setting making the perfect cover for anonymity. He became

a father figure to her that she confided in. He was

flattered that such an attractive young woman would want to

spend time with him. His wife of 40 years met Karin and

gave her blessing to the relationship. She trusted her

man, and, truth be told, she liked Karin. She wouldn’t

hold her beauty against her.

When Karin had told him of Sandi, and how she had handled

the corrupt lawyer, the Commissioner’s ears perked up. He

needed a good inspector he could trust, one that was

untouched by HQ politics. He suspected there was more than

one corrupt official in the department, and was determined

to root them out. Lt. Billings sounded like just the

person he was looking for and he said as much. Karin,

knowing how Sandi would react to favoritism of any kind,

made him swear not to just hand her the position. The

Police Commissioner was a little miffed that Karin would

think he would. Lt. Billings would have to apply and make

it through the selection process. But if she made the list

that landed on his desk, she had the job. Karin also made

the Commissioner swear Sandi would never find out that they

had talked about the position. She was afraid that if

Sandi found out Karin had had anything to do with it, it

would mar their friendship.

For her part, Sandi threw herself into her new job with a

zeal that frightened the senior members at Police

headquarters. She was supposed to have been a low-powered,

mousy bitch, not a dynamo with the ear and blessing of the

Commissioner. Sphincters tightened in all the departments

as she settled into her new position. She greeted each

person at the headquarters building with an unassuming,

ingenuous smile that lulled many into discounting her, to

their own detriment.

What Sandi was doing was re-writing the standard of

integrity to a higher level. One that befitted those whose

task it was to ‘Protect and Serve.’ She and the

Commissioner felt that those who upheld the law should be

worthy of the task. Not above reproach, as they were

human, after all. They should, however, not be working to

circumvent it. Her reports and investigations were

flawless and air tight. She brought an element of original

thought to centuries of police work. Her suggestions for

resolutions to problems were unique, often salvaging the

best part of a person’s training while removing them from

the temptation of further indiscretion. Her suggestions

were almost always taken. She became both feared and

admired for her personal honesty and integrity.

As a side benefit to her new position, Sandi was meeting

all kinds of eligible professional men and other men

successful in their fields. She seemed determined to date

each one of them. The best ones got kissed, and the cream

of the crop got invited to the mansion. The luckiest, and

most discreet one or two, needed the next day off to

recuperate after a night with Sandi. She was thorough in

that area as well.

Sandi made a standing offer to Karin after she had tested

her with that first man she had brought to the mansion. If

Karin ever took a shine to any of the men she brought home,

all she had to do was call Sandi’s beeper. When it became

obvious that she never would, Sandi suggested that if she

just wanted to scratch the itch, she should call. Sandi

was merely passing time with her dates. Her ‘Mr. Right’

hadn’t come along yet, but she was damned if she was going

to cloister herself while he took his damn sweet time

catching up to her.

Night after night Sandi listened to Karin sobbing herself

to sleep. Her heart went out to the younger woman. When

she couldn’t stand it any longer, she would go in and

comfort Karin. It always began innocently, just sitting by

her on the bed, stroking her hair. Somewhere along the

line, soft lips would wipe away an errant tear, then linger

on the hot damp flesh, cooling the fevered brow. A slight

readjustment of her legs for comfort, swinging them up on

the bed to lie beside the sobbing girl, would eventually

lead to a hot session in bed together that would leave both

of them gasping for air. It was stimulating, fulfilling,

but both of them knew it was not the answer. This, too,

was just a pastime.

Lately, on quiet nights, Sandi heard soft moaning followed

by sobs coming from Karin’s room. This was a new twist.

Her curiosity getting the best of her, she peeked in on

Karin to watch a fascinating show. Karin was tying herself

up, just as she had done when she lived in the apartment.

It appeared she was becoming more and more frustrated with

the inability of the process to satisfy her. It was the

only thing she could do, though, to bring back those

feelings she had experienced with Sam.

She would tie her legs together at the ankles, calves,

knees and mid-thighs. Sandi was frightened at how tightly

she bound each thick rope. Tight cords tortured every

movement of her tits. A wicked looking rope with strategic

knots went between her legs, hard into her crotch. This

was cinched up and held by a wide heavy leather belt around

her waist. Karen would then get her hands tied with the

safety knot and began flexing her hips to stimulate

herself. She tried herd to make herself cum, but knowing

her hands were loose was too much of a distraction to let

herself go. She burst out crying, sobs wracking her slim

frame.

Sandi walked in on her and sat beside her on the bed. "Can

I help?" she asked softly

Karin looked up at her in misery. She wasn't embarrassed

at the situation, just terribly frustrated. "My hands. I

have to leave my hands loose."

Sandi didn't understand.

Karin tried to explain to Sandi that it was the feeling of

total helplessness that was the turn on. She could relax

into it, let everything go. It was that freedom that

brought on her explosive climaxes. But when she had to

leave an ‘out’ it wasn’t the same. She couldn’t struggle

too hard, or her hands would come loose.

Sandi didn't understand the feeling of total helplessness,

having never let go of the control in her relationships,

but she understood the request. "I'll be right back," she

said.

She came back several minutes later with her hands behind

her back. She walked over to the bound girl and backed up

to the nightstand by Karin’s bed. She set several items on

it, just out of sight.

"Lift your head."

Karin craned her head forward.

Sandi slipped a blindfold over her eyes and settled it in

place. "Can you see anything?"

"No."

"Good." Next Sandi took one of the Teflon® slip-ties the

police corps used instead of handcuffs and fastened Karin's

hands to the bedpost. Karin had to stretch to keep the

thin plastic bands from digging into her delicate skin.

The stain tensed every muscle in her body. She was

quivering as she waited for Sandi’s next move.

Sandi bent and smoothed Karin’s hair back into a lovely fan

on the pillow. She tenderly stroked her cheek. "Better?"

Tears moistened the blindfold. Karin just nodded her head,

not trusting herself to speak.

"Planning to have some fun then?"

Karen gave her another blind nod, a curious wrinkle on her

forehead at the strange question. Of course, she was going

to have some fun!

Sandi touched her fingertips to Karen’s lips. When she

opened her mouth to kiss and lick them, Sandi gently urged

her mouth open. When she was lying there like a

suffocating blowfish, Sandi stripped off her own damp

panties and stuffed them in Karin's mouth.

"Then that should help to keep the noise down!" she said

softly. "Sleep tight, Karin."

She flipped the light off as she left, leaving the door

between their rooms wide open. She listened hard for any

signs of distress, but all she heard were the sounds of the

bedsprings working hard into the night. She didn’t

remember when she got to sleep, but she did remember

becoming more and more excited and frigging her own clit to

a thunderous explosion that left her drained. Until the

rising tide from the next room would sweep over her once

more and carry her along in its swift current.

Sandi got up early the next morning, exhausted. She went

into Karin’s room and cut the tight unforgiving plastic

band. She made a note to herself to get something less

punitive to use. As she rubbed the dark red skin of her

wrists, she saw that Karin's face was totally relaxed and

at ease in her sound sleep. Sandi studied her face

closely. "I'm going to have to give this a try," she

thought to herself, "soon."

'Soon' came a few weeks later. Sandi dropped hints to

Karin, oblique at first, then becoming more pointed. She

couldn’t bring herself to just come out and ask, though.

She became more of an active participant in the bondage

sessions as she tied Karin in various positions, asking

leading questions about this piece of leather and that type

of rope, even offering a few delicious suggestions of her

own. Karin never took the hints. In her mind, Sandi

wasn’t bent that way. That she helped her out was nice,

nothing more.

One night Sandi couldn’t take it any longer. She had

listened to the ecstasy in the next room long enough. She

came striding into Karin's room with an armful of ropes,

her eyes purposeful.

Karin looked at her curiously. "Not tonight, Sandi." She

giggled, "I don't have a headache."

"These aren't for you."

There was a moment of silence.

"Oh.” She sounded puzzled. Then the light went off.

“OOOOOhhhhh. Sandi! I'm surprised at you." She got up

off the bed, walking towards her friend.

"Will you help me, uh, do it?"

"But of course!” She took the huge bundle of equipment

from her. She grinned wryly as she saw a bit of everything

included in the tangled mess. Karin leveled her gaze at

her only good friend. “Sandi, are you sure you want to do

this?"

"Yes – no – yes. Oh hell! Yes, damn it, I’ve got to try

it. Once, anyway."

"With pain?"

"Yes. No. Yes. No. A little? Maybe?"

Karin laughed at her softly, then hugged her tightly. "OK.

Just a little. We’ll see how it goes." She had never seen

her friend so indecisive or afraid. Fear was good, she

knew. It helped get the adrenaline flowing, the heart

pumping and the pussy and asshole clenching for dear life

itself.

Sandi, not used to the submissive role, started to tell

Karin what to do and how she thought it should be done.

She was describing an elaborate bondage scene that made

Karin's head spin. Finally, Karin walked over to her and

kissed her mouth to shut her up.

"Not tonight, babe. You're along for the ride!"

Karin slipped her panties off her own ass and stuffed them

into Sandi's mouth, just as Sandi had done to her each time

she had tied Karin up. Sandi bridled at that at first then

nodded her assent. Turn about, and all that. Still, it

rankled her that Karin wouldn’t listen to her ideas.

Karin took the gagged police inspector and led her back

into her own bedroom. She stopped in the middle of the

large room and looked around as if for the first time. She

like what she saw. She nodded to herself; there were lots

of possibilities.

First, however, she had to prepare the victim. She

grinned. She bet herself that no one had ever thought of

Sandra Billings as a ‘victim.’ She went over to Sandi and

tied a rope around the gag to keep it in. "Don't want any

loud noises to disturb the neighbors." She pinched Sandi

hard on the ass. When she still heard a squeal coming from

behind the panty gag, she re-tied the rope, this time with

a knot centered over her mouth and made it tighter around

her neck. The next pinch induced squeal could hardly be

heard, even though this one had been to an erect nipple.

Sandi glared at her, tempted to back out.

Before she could change her mind, Karin took one end of a

long cord and tied Sandi's hands together in front of her.

Taking the loose end, she looped it over the upper crossbar

of the four poster canopied bed. Pulling down on the end

of the rope raised Sandi's hands above her head. Karin

pulled until Sandi was on her tiptoes. She tied the cord

off on the corner post.

"Bingo, girlie! You're all mine now!"

Sandi struggled against the rope and discovered she was

indeed caught tight in the simple bondage. She could kick

out with her foot, but that would mean losing her balance.

Karin would be able to dodge her kicks easily, and the rope

would dig in harshly around her wrists. Her heart pounded

in her chest as she analyzed her situation. She turned her

head to watch the crazy woman looking over her service

gear. A flicker of fear showed in her eyes as she watched

Karin advance toward her, holding an extremely sharp knife.

Calm flooded Karin. She suddenly knew what she wanted her

dearest friend to experience. It had been the wicked

looking knife that had inspired her. She was going to

scare the shit out of her, pumping her so full of

adrenaline that even all the jaded acts she had witnessed

in her police career would not be able to dull her climax.

It was a daring plan, but the equipment was there, the time

was right, and she felt she could do it.

She sidled up to the wide-eyed woman. She let herself go a

little crazy, rubbing against her taut form with her

breasts, her eyes never leaving Sandi’s. She fed off the

panic she saw building in them. Sandi didn’t know if Karin

was sane or not, now. Slowly sliding the knife up inside

Sandi's shirt, she pressed the blade up against the soft

flesh of her tits. Her sigh was so sinister, she scared

herself, a little. Sandi was visibly shaken.

Karin was careful to keep the sharp edge of the blade away

from the ivory skin, but the cold sharp steel had the

desired effect. Karin pressed the flat tip of the blade

first against one startled nipple and then the other,

making urgent, dangerous love to the erectile tissues until

they rose hard above the surface of her breast. The

flicker of fear in Sandi’s eyes became a flame, burning hot

in the bound woman. A stray tear escaped and ran down her

cheek.

Karin moved the sharp edge of the knife up to Sandi’s neck.

She paused there for effect, fascinated with the rapid

pulse she could see in each of the carotid arteries. She

tapped each one with the flat of the blade. She could have

sworn Sandi had peed her pants when she did that. Karin

was panting now, her ragged breathing adding to her crazy

image. With a single cut to each side, she sliced through

the shoulder straps of her skimpy nightgown, drawing the

sharp point purposefully, but carefully across the soft

white flesh as she went. A thin red line appeared in the

creamy flesh along the wandering trail of the knifepoint.

She pulled the strapless gown down around to Sandi's feet

and left it there. The flame in Sandi's eyes was now a

forest fire. Her bared chest was heaving. She was way

past having second thoughts.

The crazed look in Karin's eyes didn't reassure her at all.

She looked like a woman possessed. She began screaming

frantically behind the gag as Karin fixated on her tits,

circling them with the point of the knife, leaving long

painful red lines all over them. This wasn’t a game any

more. She knew only too well how sharp that knife was.

She breathed easier when Karin dropped the knife on the

floor, relief flooding her. But that was a mistake.

Karin’s eyes never left her defenseless tits. She was

coming closer....

Sandi's tits were completely at her mercy for the first

time. Karin had sucked and licked them before when that

had satisfied each other, but it was always when it was a

give and take situation. Now, with Sandi bound, she could

do anything to them she wanted. Sandi couldn’t stop her,

couldn’t get back. She gave it all to Sandi unselfishly.

Sandi, sucked into the initial tenderness of Karin’s

approach after she dropped the knife, let herself go. She

groaned behind the gag, and ground her pantied loins into

Karin’s thigh. Karin avoided her urgent hints and focused

on the large mammaries. Sandi's breasts had never been so

stimulated. They were caressed, sucked, squeezed, fondled,

pinched, mauled, bitten and slapped.

Sandi loved it all. The radical swings from gentle to

harsh, from crazy to sane kept her off balance. She didn't

know what was coming. She couldn't control what was going

to happen next. It was a new experience for her, and not

one she was sure she liked. But Karin was persistent,

leading her to the edge of her climax, then gently leading

her away. Over and over, using her mouth, teeth, tongue,

hands, fingers and her long blond hair, she focused Sandi’s

entire being on her two tits. Never had Sandi been so

aroused or her boobs so sensitive. She would climb up and

then slide back down, then higher, and back down. Over and

over, Karin slowly worked the control from her mental grasp

until she was trusting Karin with her sexual need.

As she began to trust Karin with her sexuality, with her

intimate arousal, with her very life it seemed, she

realized the attraction of being controlled. It was a

tremendous sexual high. It was addictive. Although she

was climaxing almost constantly now, her cums never seemed

to fully release the tension. Each knee-knocking explosion

just took her to another level of anticipation. Another

notch on the never-ending ratchet to a life-changing

orgasm.

It lasted for what seemed like hours to Sandi, or maybe

just a moment. She actually came when Karin slapped her

boobs. All four times. She was breathing hard and fast as

she helplessly watched the young girl draw back her arm and

slap her sensitive tits with her open palm. She held her

chest out for more and more and more. And she came and

came and came with each hard slap. There really was

something to this pain thing.

When she slipped off her panties, Sandi didn't know what to

expect next. But it was nothing short of awesome. Karin

had become very proficient in the art of cunilinguis over

the past months and she used all her talents now. Sandi

was sucking air through her dilated nostrils, exhausted

before the fun even started.

Karin loosened the rope holding Sandi’s hands up over her

head and brought her around to the foot of the bed, so that

she was facing the headboard. She took a rope and tied it

around one ankle, then tied that rope to the bedpost. The

other ankle was tied to the other post. Karin pulled the

ropes as tight as possible. Sandi was spread as wide as

she could be.

Karin bent Sandi over the waist high bar at the top of the

footboard and pulled the long cord tied around her hands up

to the headboard and tied it off. She pulled on the rope

until Sandi’s torso was stretched taut parallel to the

mattress, her breasts swaying heavily as she tried to catch

her breath and recover. Sandi never once considered

struggling to get free. She had surrendered her will to

Karin.

The nightstand beside the bed held Sandi's favorite plastic

partners and Karin teased her cunt with the largest one

maliciously before slowly inserting it into her fully and

turning it on. Sandi began lurching and screaming into the

gag almost immediately. It was as if she had never

experienced the feeling of a vibrator before, and she was

on Radio Shack’s Preferred Customer list. She was going

crazy and she couldn't stop it. She didn't want to.

A sharp slap sounded, shaking her from her erotic vacation.

There was almost absolute silence. The only noise was the

muffled sound of the vibrator.

"MMMMMMPPPPPPFFFFFF, came from the bound detective, as the

pain blossomed in her overloaded brain. Nerves shorted

out. She saw flavors and tasted the metallic edges of

pain. Fear gripped her once more, then pleasure wiped all

else from her mind. First a flash of pain, then the flood

of pleasure whipsawed her mental state to mush as she

experienced her first whipping.

Karin watched the bright red stripes appear on the perfect

moon-shaped ass. She held the thin belt from a summer

dress in her hand, the metal clasp held firmly in her hand.

The supple leather wasn’t stiff enough to do much damage,

but to the untrained skin in front of her, she could only

imagine the agony it brought.

SLAP! SLAP! SLAP!

Sandi was frantic in her efforts to free herself, but Karin

was watching her cunt intently. It was flowing freely now,

almost gushing out with each stripe she delivered to that

weaving target. She continued to beat on the helpless

detective. She was relentless, merciless with her harsh

caresses. At about the twelfth stroke she noticed a

radical change in Sandi's behavior. Her ass no longer

twisted to get away from the punishing belt, but she was

now pushing it out to meet it. Her frantic screaming had

lessened to an animalistic orgasmic howl from deep within

her soul. Karin recognized the sounds of true sexual

release, of true freedom.

Karin grinned. Her friend was realizing the wonders of

pain and pleasure, combined with total helplessness. She

was wound up about as tight as Karin could get her. It

made her wet just thinking about the super climax that

Sandi was going to have in just a few more moments. She

wasn't jealous, just happy for her friend.

The raised ass in front of her was a deep red from the

lashing. Karin had gradually worked from the top of her

ass downwards and the last strokes had terrorized the

exposed slit with punishing contact. It pooched out from

between the widespread legs, begging for attention. As it

had lashed across her labia, the belt had pounded the butt

of the plastic vibrator deep into the mouth of her uterus.

Sandi stiffened as she suffered this new experience. No

man had reached so deep inside her.

Karin stepped up behind her bound lover. She traced the

crimson stripes of her own design with her sharp

fingernail. The light touch on the sensitized skin felt

like a branding iron to Sandi. She felt the plastic dildo

being pulled out of her twat. She felt abandoned empty

without it’s filling presence.

She sobbed uncontrollably. She was broken, beaten. She

would do anything, suffer anything for her lover. This

girl, this naïve, innocent, devious, adorable, young

country girl had broken the sexual will of this

sophisticated, worldly, experienced detective with a simple

rope trick.

Sandi didn't notice or react when Karin placed the tip of

the large vibrator against the virginal anal ring. It

never occurred to her that Karin would attempt to penetrate

that opening. For all her supposed experience, Sandi had

never taken it up the ass. None of her male suitors had

dared suggest it, nor probed it with their finger. Hell,

she carried a gun and knew how to use it.

The beating had numbed and relaxed her anal muscles. Each

stinging blow had caused a clenching of the sphincter and

the poor thing was just plain tired. The smooth tip of the

plastic probe slipped past the tired sentinel with ease,

unnoticed by the delirious woman.

When Karin switched the vibrator on full speed, Sandi

jerked in her bonds as if electrocuted. Karin applied a

firm pressure and the thick shaft slid up her back chute,

stuffing her in a most unfamiliar manner. Unfamiliar, butt

not entirely unpleasant.

Sandi babbled behind the gag. Her words, if not muffled,

would have been totally incoherent, anyway. Karin

monitored her progress carefully and pushed her just a

little higher. She worked the dildo in and out of the

clasping orifice. With each inward thrust she could feel

Sandi’s rectum accepting the shaft, until finally it felt

as if she were sucking it into herself.

Karin stood up. She swung the thin belt she had used

before in a firm, but not too harsh, arc and caught her

right breast on the right side, down around the bottom

swells. The end of the belt curled around the resilient

orb and slapped into the tender flesh in the deep valley

between the two mounds. Sandi was beyond caring. She

noted the new source of pain in her subconscious memory and

surrendered to the mounting tension in her cunt. She

didn't care anymore about anything except the coming

release of sexual tension within her. Further battering of

her breasts left them striped like red and white round

hemispheres. The last two stripes crossed each erect

nipple.

Karin watched her friend struggle towards her erotic

conclusion. She hesitated to finish her off the way she

wanted to. Sandi would never have agreed to this if she

had known ahead of time. Which was a very good reason why

she was tied down and gagged.

She took a deep breath to calm her own excitement. This

side of the ropes was good, to, but not as good as the

other for Karin. She carefully measured her swing. She

took a practice swing. It couldn’t be too hard or it would

injure the delicate tissues, but too soft wouldn’t be

enough of a shock to push her over the precipice. She took

another practice swing. That was about right, but it was

still a guess. This was her first time on this end of the

whip. She took a deep breath and held it.

SNAP!

Karin held her breath still, waiting.

Sandi went motionless for several seconds. Rigid.

Karin's heart sank. It had been too hard! Oh, damn! She

started to rush to her friend's side when Sandi began to

vibrate, twitching from her toenails to her hair follicles.

The vibration became a shudder. The whole bed began to

shake with the force of her cum.

Karin quickly applied another blow to the seared tender

flesh of Sandi's cunt, bringing the blow up from underneath

to slap the entire surface area of the intimate area. This

tissue was not intended to take this kind of abuse and the

second shock to her system pushed Sandi faster down the

slippery slope of orgasmic ecstasy. The tip of the belt

had flattened the throbbing exposed clit. Sandi’s system

went on overload.

The second blow had been enough. Sandi fainted dead away,

although her body continued to shake and spasm in orgasm

for minutes after she was unconscious. It was a release

she sorely needed. She would never again scoff at those

who gravitated towards bondage and pain for their sexual

preferences.

Karin carefully untied her unconscious friend. She eased

the dildo from her sucking ass and wiped the plastic shaft

clean with a damp cloth. She laid her gently on the bed

and went into the bathroom to draw a steaming hot bath.

Chapter 12

Sandi woke up cradled in her girl friend’s arms, floating

in the frothy steamy water of the Jacuzzi. Never in her

life had she had felt so satisfied, so fulfilled, so

complete. Or so decadent. She floated languorously in her

post-orgasmic haze as Karin gently stroked her striped

breasts with soft hands, whispering in her ear the

endearing terms Karin had herself heard from her mysterious

Sam. It seemed so long ago now, yet in her mind, the words

and the memories were as fresh as yesterday.

"Karin?" Sandi stirred in her grasp.

"Hmmm?"

"You were a total bitch!” she said softly, then paused.

“Thank you!" It was almost a whisper.

"Oh, Sandi, I'm sorry, I didn't mean to... All I wanted...

I didn’t know how hard... I’d never done been on that

side."

"Hush, kiddo. It was great. You were great. What I meant

was, if I had known ahead of time what you were going to

do, I wouldn't have let you do it. But now that I know

what it’s like, I want it again."

"Was it really good for you, Sandi? Honest?"

"It was totally good."

They lie still for a while, soaking in the feelings and the

in the heat from the swirling water.

"Sandi?” Karin hesitated. “Uh, you know it's better with

a man."

Sandi thought, carefully weighing her response. “Are you

offering me Sam?" she asked, tentatively.

The hands on her breast stopped their caressing motion and

she felt the stinging drops of Karin's tears falling on her

shoulders. Even after all this time, Karin was still

totally in love with this mysterious Sam.

"I can’t. I don't have Sam to offer you. But if I did, it

would be his decision, not mine."

"Hey, lighten up. I was just kidding! I don't want Sam,

honest. You know me better than that. But,” she got

serious, “how can I just let a man do this to me? I can’t

just hand one of my dates a whip, smile and bend over for

him! In my position, no pun intended, if something like

that ever got out, my career would be ruined."

Karin came back to the point. "So. Do you really want to

do this again?"

"Yes."

“With a man?”

“Yes, damit! What’s your point?”

"A man will hit you harder, hurt you more."

"I know that – I guess, anyway. Yes. He would."

"A man will want to fuck you after."

"I know that, too. That's kind of what I want. I am so

horny right now that water spigot is looking tempting."

"What about getting a hard cock rammed up your ass? Have

you done that before? You felt pretty tight in there."

"God, I want it there most of all. Even though that was my

first time, it was great! I want to do it again, for real

this time. It felt so nasty, so- so dirty. I’d have to be

tied down, though, or he’d never get it in me."

Karin dropped one hand down to the ‘V’ between Sandi's legs

and began urgently massaging the sensitive flesh there.

Sandi felt the billowy breasts convulsing spastically

behind her back and finally realized the massage as a

diversion.

"Are you laughing at me?"

Karin burst out in a peal of laughter, throwing her head

back in hilarity.

"Your first time?" she got out between spasms. "With all

your sophisticated lovers, that was your first time?” She

howled at the indignant woman’s little secret.

Sandi sulked. "I never let anyone do that. I always

thought it was dirty and that it would hurt really bad.

But after the whipping, it didn't even hurt!"

This brought more laughter from Karin until finally Sandi

joined in the contagious actions. When they settled down

Karin asked her, “Do you know anyone who could do it to

you? Someone you could trust to be discreet? Someone who

would enjoy it, would get aroused, sexually? You don’t

want someone to vent frustrations when you’re helpless like

that, I would think."

For some reason, Sandi immediately thought of that young

patrolman at her last station. There had been some quiet

rumors about him and what he liked to do. But, as there

had been no specific complaints filed, she couldn’t and

didn’t press the issue. If those rumors were true – and

she had some inside knowledge they were – he would be

perfect. If it ever got around, though, her career would

be over. She grinned. He was kind of handsome, too, she

recalled. She wouldn’t mind getting fucked by him, either

way!

She spoke up, hesitantly. "Well, there was this one guy.

He worked for me at the last precinct. There were some

rumors, so I investigated. I heard some pretty reliable

stories about what he liked to do to women, but no one ever

filed a complaint. But, shit, he can't know who I am,

ever.”

Karin thought a minute. "I have an idea, Sandi. It just

might work." She proceeded to outline her plan to Sandi as

the two conspirators relaxed in the hot healing water.

A week later, Ben Johnson, the unsuspecting young

patrolman, rang the doorbell of a huge mansion. He was out

of his district, way off his usual beat. He didn’t know

any people who lived in this neighborhood, or any who could

afford to, either. It was out of his price range. He had

received a sealed envelope with orders from the

Commissioner's office to report here, to this address, for

a "Special Assignment". He had double-checked the orders

with his boss, and his boss' boss. They had both checked

and then confirmed the unusual orders. They didn't know

any more than he did, and they didn’t like it that they had

been by-passed.

The door opened silently while he was turned around,

looking back out over the manicured grounds. He didn’t

hear it open. He quickly turned around at the sound of a

feminine cough. He gave an audible gasp when he saw the

gorgeous woman who opened the door. She looked him over

appraisingly, as well, a pleased smile on her face.

"It's nice to know I am still appreciated by the man in the

street," she said wryly.

"Oh, Ma'am, Ummm, I'm sorry, Ma'am, I meant no disrespect,

Ma'am." He was clearly shaken.

"None taken, Officer. Please do come in."

She stepped back and he entered the luxurious foyer. Karin

and Sandi had been busy redecorating, putting the feminine

touches to the house to make it their home. She led him to

a sitting area and stood behind a chair.

"Sit down, please." She indicated a seat across from her

chair.

He sat on the edge of the chair she indicated, holding his

cap in his lap. He was obviously nervous. She could see

the wheels going round and round in his head, trying to

place her, if he recognized her, if he had met her in a

bar, something. He drew a complete blank, and that

frightened him even more.

She decided to put him at ease, sort of. "I understand you

are probably nervous about being here. I would be, if I

were in your shoes. I am going to make you a proposition.

You will have to make a decision to accept it, or not,

based on very little information. I apologize for that,

but it is unavoidable and necessary.

“My name is Karin Saunders. That is all you need to know

about me. If you dig for any more information about me, as

young policemen tend to do, it will, well, ruin your career

and the careers of other fine officers. That is not at

threat nor is it intended as one. It is simply what will

happen.

“What you will be asked to do here is not illegal, nor is

it police business. As I said, after I have explained it

more fully to you, you may decline to participate without

any consequences whatsoever to you or your career. Your

decision to participate in any activities here must be

completely voluntary, unofficial, and absolutely never

discussed outside of this house. Do you understand those

terms?"

Ben nodded his head slowly, although it was clear to Karin

that the whole situation baffled him. He understood the

terms. It was the reasons behind them that escaped him,

and that scared the shit out of him. Whenever Ben ran into

unusual or particularly dangerous situations, the skin on

the back of his head would tingle or itch, warning him. It

had not stopped tingling since he had parked his car

outside in the long drive. But he was curious. She had

said he could say 'No'.

“OK, so far,” he said.

Karin nodded and cleared her throat, "Officer Johnson, I

have to ask you some questions. Please answer truthfully,

even if the answers are embarrassing.”

He nodded, clearly wary.

“Are you married?"

"No, Ma'am."

"Please, call me 'Karin.' Are you engaged?"

"No, Ma'am – er, Karin."

"Prospects?"

She was asking some personal questions, and he was uneasy

about the direction. His last long-term relationship

shattered on the rocks of policeman's stress and his

peculiar need to dominate and inflict painful pleasure.

That break-up had been almost a year ago, but he was still

rather touchy about it.

"No, and I don't like your prying."

"I understand, Officer Johnson, but I promise you'll see

the reasons for these questions shortly. If I may, there

are just a few more?"

He nodded curtly, not believing her.

"Is there anyone special?"

"NO, Damit! The last girl, well, we, umm, broke up," he

snapped and started to get up.

Karin shifted nervously and looked to the side into the

room next door. Receiving reassurance, she continued.

"Please understand Officer Johnson, I have to ask these

questions. It is important. May I continue, or would you

like out now,...?"

She didn’t say it, but he felt her teasing him with ‘before

you even know what it’s about.’ Not only that, but someone

else was here. He sensed it. His curiosity got the best

of him. "Please continue. I guess."

"They are very personal questions," she restated. “More so

than they have been.”

"Go ahead and ask. You said I could leave if I wanted."

"Are you gay?" She didn’t ask accusingly or negatively.

It was an honest question.

He blushed. "NO! Definitely not." He smiled openly at

her, and made a mock leer. “Especially not when there are

women as beautiful as you around. No, ma’am.”

She laughed lightly and smiled at him reassuringly. "We -

uh - I didn't think so. Just checking."

He heard a soft giggle coming from the other room. He was

even more curious about what in the Hell this was all

about. ‘Nothing ventured, nothing gained’, as they say.

Karin shifted her weight from one foot to the other. His

policeman's instincts told him that she was nervous about

the next questions. These must be the important ones. He

was on his guard for a trick.

"Uh, what do you feel about pain in a sexual relationship,

Mr. Johnson?"

He nearly shit in his uniform at this question. He made no

secret of his dominant leanings the station, but he didn’t

store whips and chains in his locker, either. He realized

suddenly that his summons to this house had come from the

Commissioner's Office. He shriveled inside. He might as

well resign and move on. Any chance of a career in this

town was over.

"Is this an I/A investigation? Did my ex-fiancée file a

complaint against me?" he queried. His voice was almost a

whisper, very intense.

"What do you feel about pain in a sexual relationship?"

Karin did not answer his questions, but merely repeated her

own.

He held his head in his hands. “This is about my old girl

friend, isn’t it?” He had had a gut feeling about her. He

knew it would come to this. He had pushed her too hard.

Karin noticed his despair. She decided to follow it up.

“Did you tie her up?”

Pale and shaken, he soaked his shirt with nervous

perspiration. "Yes," he admitted.

"And you hurt her?"

"Yes."

"Did you do this to her because you were angry with her?"

"No, I wasn’t mad at her or anything like that. That

wasn’t the intent of what happened. It's just, well, for

some people, well, pain seems to make sex better. Giving

it, getting it. I thought - ... Well, I had hoped that she

might ..." He tailed off.

"Do you enjoy doing that to women, tying them up and

hurting them?"

"It’s not as bad as it sounds, but, yes, I do. Well, I

usually do. With her I discovered that I only get aroused

if the pain excites my partner, too. Please understand, I

get aroused by ‘normal’ sex, too. It’s just that, well,

having complete control over someone, having someone submit

to me, well, it gets me hot. It excites me a lot.

“With my fiancée, my old girlfriend, she had reluctantly

agreed to try it, but only if I went real slow – which I

did! She could tell how much it meant to me, but she was

scared, too. She had had a bad experience with her step-

dad, uncle, or something. I cared about her so much, I

just wanted to share this part of my life with her.

“The one time we tried it, I had only just tied her up. I

hadn’t really hurt her at all, and I wasn’t going to go any

farther than a couple of hand slaps on her butt, not until

I thought she could take it. Until she wanted it, I hoped.

Maybe I never would have. I was so excited, just tying her

to the bed, seeing her helpless like that. It scared her

too much, I guess. She sort of hurt herself struggling in

her panic and I felt so bad. She panicked, like, all of a

sudden, and I couldn’t get her released fast enough. She

went berserk. I had to take her to the hospital and get

her a shot to calm her down.

“I'm awfully sorry, Ms. Saunders. If there's anything I

can do for her, say to her? She wouldn't talk to me or

take my calls, and I ... I’m sorry." He had concluded that

she was his old girl friend’s lawyer, relative, or

something.

Karin smiled. He was perfect. Sensitive and no mean

streak she could sense. The information about his ex-

fiancée had not been picked up in their research, but what

had happened was not surprising. She didn’t have much

experience, but from what Sandi said, most women weren’t

like Karin, who craved pain and bondage naturally. Most

women had to be seduced into enjoying pain, as Sandi had

been. Karin thought it was probably possible for most

women to enjoy it, when done with tenderness and care, if

only to allow their partners to have the pleasure of her

submission.

Ben sniffled and sat up straight. He was embarrassed for

baring his soul in front of this beautiful woman. He

shuffled his feet uncomfortably, waiting for her next move.

Karin was pensive, thinking. She had made Sandi let her

make the final decision. Sandi wanted this too much and

could not be objective about this guy. She looked at him

in light of his lengthy response. He was no Sam, that was

for sure. The young officer was a little inexperienced,

but that could be good and bad. She looked him over for a

long time, looking for a sign. What she saw underneath his

nervousness and inexperience was a younger version of Sam.

He was about the same size and all. What struck her as she

looked at him now were his eyes. They were dark blue,

twinkling serious and playful at the same time. They were

Sam’s eyes.

She held out her hand, silently inviting the unseen third

person from the next room to enter. "Ben, I would like to

introduce you to Lady X."

Ben sprang to his feet as a goddess in kinky bondage garb

floated into the room.

"Lady X, this is Ben Johnson. Please, sit here," she said

to the second woman, indicating the chair in front of her.

Ben stood, speechless. The first woman, Karin, was

beautiful. This second one was an absolute goddess. She

glided lightly to the chair and sat down in front of Karin.

Karin placed her hands gently on her shoulders and caressed

them. She urged the stunned patrolman to sit back down.

Ben and Lady X sat facing each other.

Ben shut his open mouth. His eyes were fixed on the vision

in front of him. Tall, she was tall. Blonde. She had

blonde hair. He could see her ponytail, and her pussy hair

was blonde, too. Legs. Loooong legs ending in thigh-high

heels that pointed her slender feet almost straight down.

Beautiful shiny leather boots wrapped tightly around her

shapely calves and thighs, ending just below her bare

crotch.

Her waist was wasp thin, held in by the tiniest corset he

had ever seen. Her waist flared out to the most sumptuous

hips, accentuated in their ripeness by the squeezing

corset. The shiny black cincher ended just below two of

the most beautiful tits he had ever seen. Perfect cones of

snowy white flesh proudly pointing out at the world. They

were the size of large grapefruits, but with her height,

she was perfectly proportioned.

He stared for a long time at her nipples. Spring-loaded

sharp-toothed clamps joined by a heavy silver chain dangled

from them. The teeth bit into the tender ruby flesh. The

heavy chain between the clamps bounced and swung as she

moved. Even as she breathed, the weight of the silver

chain tugged the brave buds downwards. The tough little

buttons fought gravity valiantly and kept the clamps

standing out from the ivory flesh of her tits.

Her graceful arms and shoulders were completely bare, a

strange anomaly that struck him as incredibly sexy. A

thick leather posture collar was banded tightly around her

neck. It led into a full hood that left only her nose and

eyes visible. Her hair, the ponytail, cascaded up and out

of an opening in the top. The hood was tightly laced up

the back. The smooth area over her mouth was ovaled and

indented, as if a tight-fitting gag had been installed with

the hood.

Lady X bowed gracefully to him from her chair, her tits

swaying slightly with each swing of the heavy chain. Karin

had remained silent during his long appraisal of the hooded

woman. She had worked long and hard getting this outfit

together and she knew Sandi looked hot. She appreciated

his response to her work.

"Ben? ... Uh, Ben!" she brought him back to earth.

"Huh? What?"

"Lady X has some particular requests, and has asked me to

ask you if you would help her with them. After what you

have told me today, I think, perhaps, you may be able to

help her out. You may be able to help each other."

She looked down at Sandi. "Lady X, do you wish to submit

to the desires of this man?"

Sandi nodded. It was a firm nod, no doubts in it.

"Do you do so voluntarily?"

Sandi nodded again.

Karin helped her to her feet. She lifted one immaculate

hand to her lips and kissed it gently. Ben noticed the

tenderness that passed between the two women. He also

noted their similarity. He figured they must be sisters,

or something.

"Lady X, your hands are free, your feet are unbound. You

are free to choose your own direction, your destiny. What

do you choose?"

Lady X hugged the moderator tightly to her bare chest. The

clamps dug in and twisted cruelly at this gesture, but Lady

X gave no indication of the pain. Then the leather clad

woman turned to face the stunned policeman. She walked to

the side of his chair and gracefully laid herself across

his lap. She wiggled to settle herself and then crossed

her wrists behind her back.

"If you accept the offer of her submission to you, use your

cuffs to bind her."

Ben couldn't get to the long plastic loop on his belt fast

enough. He slipped it around the delicate bones of her

wrists and ratcheted the thin nylon loops tight. His heart

was pounding in his ears. To slow his thoughts and catch

his breath, he traced the veins in each soft arm up to her

elbows. He reveled in the delicacy of that ivory skin, the

softness. This goddess was bound, over his lap, at his

mercy. He looked up at Karin. There were tears on her

cheeks, but they were from happiness.

Karin caught his eye and walked over to him. Lifting up

his hand to her lips, she placed a kiss on his open palm.

"Lady X is giving you a tremendous gift – her trust. You

may do to her whatever you wish in this house, except for

one thing. You may never remove her hood or learn her

identity. In addition, I must warn you. If you mark her

permanently in any way without explicit permission from me,

I will cut you balls off. Slowly.” She grinned, softening

the bald threat. “I don't think I will have to do that,

though. She trusts you. I trust you.

"You may use any room in the house for your, uh,

‘activities.’ There are additional, umm, shall we say,

‘facilities’ in the basement, as well, which you may find

helpful. My wish, our wish is for you to take her to the

heights of pain and pleasure and beyond. It is her

specific wish that when you have her there, that you then

take her in the pussy or up the ass. But take her with

love and tenderness."

Having said that, Karin turned and walked out the door of

the house, leaving him alone with this vision from his wet

dreams stretched out across his lap.

Ben sat in a daze. This was too good to be true. He

traced the deep crease down the center of her firm ass with

his finger. Lady X wiggled erotically in response to the

wandering digit. He gently cupped the ivory hemispheres,

one in each of his strong hands, pulling them up and apart.

Her pink sphincter winked at him, beckoning him to enter.

Releasing her ass cheeks, he watched their elastic motion

as they rebounded back together, hiding her teasing asshole

from view. He realized he was as hard as a rock. Lady X

had already discovered his hardness and was rhythmically

humping herself on his lap, trying to stimulate her clit.

He gave a tentative, but solid, slap at the creamy

hemispheres. There was a satisfying whistle of air out of

the woman in response. Her ass cheeks immediately stuck

out for more punishment, begging him with their audacious

posture.

"Lady X?"

The hood nodded in response.

"The other lady, Karin, is gone. I don't know what your

relationship is with her, but if she is forcing you to do

this, I will stop. So I will ask you myself, do you really

want to do this?"

A definite bobbing of her head confirmed her desire to

continue.

"You are not drugged or being coerced in any way?"

She waggled her whole body in negative response.

“Is this conversation being recorded in any way?”

Again, she waggled ‘No.’

"Have you done this with a man before?"

She waggled again.

"This, this is your first time?" His voice was

incredulous. He hadn’t thought that the two women might

have tormented each other. As she lay there, he wasn't

sure but he thought she was laughing. He didn't know he

had used the very same emphasis as Karin had only a few

days earlier.

It struck her as incredibly funny. She was unable to enjoy

the humor, however, as she was brought up short. She

realized just how restrained she was, because she choked on

the gag when she started to laugh. She bobbed her head.

"You know this is going to hurt."

She bobbed.

“You know this excites me, sexually, that is?”

She rubbed her body against his lap in response. She knew,

alright.

"I may want to fuck you afterwards, or even during our time

together. Do you understand I will not ask your permission

to take you however I wish?"

A most emphatic bob made him smile. She had the right

idea. He fingered her asshole and she bobbed her entire

body up and down, almost working herself off his lap.

"Should I ask you any more questions?" he asked her,

laughing at her enthusiasm. He was getting very excited.

It had been a long time.

A similarly emphatic waggle was interrupted by a satisfying

SMACK of his hand on her left ass cheek. She stiffened and

screamed into the gag, eager to be on her long climb up the

mountain.

Shit! Karin had been right. A man was different. His

hands were larger, his blows more solid. She could tell by

that first swat that this was not a game with him, but

serious business. Most of all, she could feel it in his

whole being, he enjoyed what he was doing to her. No, she

corrected herself, he enjoyed what they were doing

together. She was a part of this, too.

Ben made the climb up her orgasmic mountain long and hard.

His technique was to blister one cheek, leaving the other

completely alone. The contrast between the sensations

coming from the adjacent spheres heightened the experience

for the recipient. The slaps to the abused cheek went on

unabated for several minutes, accompanied by a gentle

caressing of the untouched cheek.

Lady X was going crazy. This ‘fire and ice’ technique he

used was blissful agony. She rolled her hip to try to

direct his swats to the other, ignored cheek, but he was

too experienced for that. The pinkish color of her ass

turned to a dangerous red, looking angry and bruised.

Ben knew better. The hot blood flowing to the spanked

skin’s surface was over-oxygenating the nerve endings,

deadening the pain. Soon she would not be able to feel the

swats anymore and he would have to switch to the other

cheek to continue the torment. Then, when that one was

numbed, the first one would be hyper-sensitized and he

could start over. Back and forth, back and forth. A good

spanking could go on for hours. He intended this one to be

a very good one.

His fingers visited the dark cleft between her legs. It

was damp and warm. He slipped his middle finger into her

cunt. He held it still in the hot tunnel and felt the

tremors of her passing orgasms squeezing it tight. He

broke out in a hot sweat as he imagined his hot prick in

that velvet vice.

After he had put her glowing ass through several cycles of

fire and ice, Ben brought his thumb to bear on her ass

hole. She pushed eagerly up against the intruding digit

and he slipped it in up to his palm. Twisting his hand, he

brought his other fingers to bear on her cunt and double

fucked her to climax.

She lay across his lap, panting. He could see the sweat

running freely from her armpits down the sides of her

hanging breasts, onto the nipple clamps and finally,

dripping from the swinging chain to the rug below. They

both rested for several minutes.

He helped her to her feet. She turned to face him, her

eyes her only form of expression. He looked at her eyes.

They showed no fear, just excitement and anticipation. She

clearly wanted more. He was eager to give it to her.

"Show me the basement." It was a command.

Chapter 13

The eyes in the hood widened in a twinge of fear and

excitement, but her head bobbed her acceptance of his

command. She turned and led him to the basement door. Her

hands were fastened behind her, so she stood impatiently by

the door, shifting from one high-heeled foot to the other.

She didn’t like waiting. He teased her, playing with her

exposed body, making her wait for him to open the door. He

did, finally, and she led him down the stairs into the

cellar.

Karin and Sandi had been busy refinishing this area of the

house, as well. All the rubbish and papers had been

removed. The walls, floors and ceilings had been finished

and painted. It was a nondescript area, but well lighted

and clean. Karin had especially wanted to completely

redecorate the area of the basement where she had been

raped. Sandi agreed.

Part of the cellar had been closed off for a special area.

This section had an extra deep sunken floor, making the

height of the ceiling about 12 feet. It had apparently

been intended to accommodate the bulky insulation necessary

for a proper wine cellar. The two women had plotted and

giggled as they furnished the room, which they called ‘the

dungeon.’ They had outfitted their playroom in the motif

of its title, with massive pieces of medieval-style

furnishings placed strategically around the spacious room.

Other furnishings, like heavy iron rings in the floor and

on the walls, chains with manacles dangling, whips and

other implements gave the room the aura of fear and

foreboding of a real dungeon. All of the furnishings were

working models. The two women were insistent on that

point. However, none of them had been used before. This

visit by the Lady X was the maiden voyage, so to speak.

Sandi was deeply honored that Karin had made it available

for her today.

Until a short time ago, Sandi had never imagined she would

be using this room as a submissive. That was Karin’s

thing. Sandi walked over to the heavy door to the dungeon.

Ben grunted as he swung it open, the weight surprising him.

The door was very heavy and solid.

Lady X proceeded her new master down the wide steps into

the dark room. Bumping a switch with her hood, she lit the

windowless room in soft light. She stood there shaking,

terrified of what would happen in the next few minutes or,

dare she hope?, hours. She was also incredibly horny, more

so than she could ever remember being in her entire life.

Her entire focus seemed to be on her cunt and getting

something shoved inside of it.

Ben whistled in appreciation of the furnishings. He turned

to his victim. "Lady X, this is going to hurt like hell!

I didn’t intend to ask you again, but, shit, I have to.

Are you sure this is what you want?"

In response, Lady X went over to him and, turning around

lightly grasped his rampant cock with her bound hands. She

measured its hardness and length. When she was satisfied

that this excited him, she knelt down in front of him in

the classic submissive posture, her head bowed. She rubbed

his feet, ankles and lower legs with her hooded head. It

reminded him of the cat he had had when he was growing up.

He allowed her to stay in her submissive posture while he

removed his uniform. He folded it neatly and placed it on

a hanger, apparently for that purpose. He grinned. The

room had obviously been designed by a woman. Make that

women. men didn’t provide hangers. They used pegs. He

looked down at his cock sticking out from his flat belly.

Must be where we get the idea.

Naked, he turned to see her sitting on her heels watching

him. He faced her, his thick cock swinging in a great arc

in front of him. He stepped over to her. "Like it?"

An enthusiastic bob made him smile. It was always nice to

be appreciated.

"Want it?"

The light dancing in her eyes was delightful. In response,

she bobbed her entire body up and down so hard she lost her

balance with her hands cuffed behind her and tipped over.

He burst out laughing. “That eager, are you?"

He helped her up to her feet. "But we just have to try out

some of this wonderful equipment first, don't you think?"

he teased as he released her hands from behind her.

She massaged her wrists as he wandered around the room. He

walked over to the wall and examined the racks of whips,

canes, rods and crops. There were all shapes and sizes,

there were some not intended to be used on human flesh. He

again whistled under his breath.

"Have you used any of these? They look new."

She shook her head.

"None of them?"

Again she shook her head.

"Have you ever been under the whip?"

Another shake.

He stared at her for a while, mentally adjusting his

evaluation of this wonderful woman's courage. He walked

over to another wall. It looked like a wall of soft rubber

breasts, each with erect nipples. Each pair of tits was

adorned with a different kind of nipple clamp, squeezing

device, or tit press. They all looked painful, but some

look just plain vicious. About half of the sets of fake

boobs had tiny gold rings pierced through the nipples.

Those didn't have clamps, but had weights, chains and other

implements of torture that attached with small hooks. One

set of the regular rubber tits was empty.

Pointing at her nipple clamps, he asked her, "Do these go

there?"

She nodded that they did.

"Take them off and put them away," he commanded her.

She stomped her foot in a childish way and shook her head

'No.' She walked sexily over to him with her hips swaying

provocatively from side to side. Lifting and cupping her

hands, she offered up her breasts to him. He looked at her

dancing eyes and toyed with her proffered treasures.

“This is going to cost you, big time,” he informed her as

he took off the clamps, pulling her tortured nipples

maliciously as he did. She flinched, but did not move

away. He turned and put the clamps on the empty set of

tits on the wall.

He massaged her bare nipples to stimulate the circulation

in the pressed flesh. Her eyes watered as she stood

passively in front of him, totally at his command. His

heart began to melt for this mystery woman, fascinated by

her submissiveness to him. He would find out who she was,

and ask her to be in his life forever, if it was the last

thing he did. He didn't know how, but he would.

But first, there was the matter of a whipping to take care

of. That was about all anyone could do on the particular

piece of equipment he had selected. Four padded manacles

on a large square frame. The entire body was accessible to

be beaten, front, back, and sides. Even the palms of the

hands and the soles of the feet could be attacked at the

whim of a whip-wielding aggressor.

The entire frame could be rotated to a horizontal position

for fucking or to a heads down position for additional

terror. A waist belt could be attached to the ceiling to

help support the victim in the horizontal position.

It was a well-equipped dungeon.

He turned to the woman he knew as Lady X. Holding out his

hand, he led her over to the large device. The simple

touch of her hand made him shiver inside, as if a spark had

crossed between them. Her hand was soft, but firm. There

was a hidden strength in her touch that was missing from

most women's touches, he thought.

In a quick movement, she pulled him to her and wrapped her

arms around his neck. She held on to him tightly. She

squeezed hard for a long time, as if searching for

something inside him or inside of herself. He waited for

her, patiently, stroking her smooth, rosy ass cheeks as she

clung to him.

Apparently she found what she had been looking for.

Releasing him gently, she put her hands to his face and in

a macabre, but touching, gesture, placed the leathery

rictus mouth of the hood over his lips and pressed lightly

against them.

He was deeply touched. He understood the gesture. She had

just kissed him, giving him her permission to continue,

however he desired. No more questions, no more hesitation.

She trusted him.

Sandi, tears streaming down her face and a contorted smile

on her deformed lips, stepped into the box-like frame of

the device and waited for him to make the next move.

He took a deep breath and looked down. He had spurted his

cum all over her leg while she had kissed him. With no

other touching. The creamy white fluid dripped down her

inner thigh and onto the top of the boots. He went over to

her and wiped it off her leg with his fingers. He rubbed

his cum into her tits, focusing on her swollen and sore

nipples.

He also cleaned off her cunt juice that was running down

her thighs. He rubbed this into her breasts as well.

Impulsively, he leaned down and kissed the tips, sucking

them into his mouth one after another. He was surprised.

He had never tasted his cum before. Together, the two

fluids tasted quite pleasing to him. She fidgeted as he

cleaned and then kissed her, her stomach quaking in

giggles.

"Too bad you can't taste this. Our flavors go quite good

together," he said rising to his feet. "Maybe another

time...?"

He took her hand and fastened the padded manacle around her

delicate wrist. The second wrist followed the first into

captivity. He adjusted the lengths of the chains attached

to the manacles. She was stretched to the extent of her

height, teetering on the high heels.

There was a short bar just below each of the ankle

restraints, and he discovered that he could hook the heel

of the shoe over this bar to help support the weight of the

victim. Even so, her legs were spread painfully wide

apart.

Sandi allowed herself to be placed into the restraints. By

climbing on the short bars with her heels hooked over them,

she had demonstrated their use for him. He quickly

tightened the manacles around her booted ankles.

He walked over to the wall. He stopped and looked at Lady

X. He didn't have all that much skin to attack. Just her

lower abdomen, pussy, upper thighs and her luscious ass

below the tight corset. Above it were her tits, shoulders,

upper back and arms. He made his selections from among the

wide variety of whips and moved back to the hanging woman.

He laid all of them down in front of her. She began to

tremble in anticipation.

He picked up the first whip. It had only been a short

while since the initial spanking and her ass was not ready

for a great deal of pain just yet. He swung the soft

leather strap he had selected against her upper thighs. A

soft slap echoed off the padded walls. She didn't even

jerk.

He continued the soft slapping, covering all of her exposed

skin with his tender leather caresses. As he returned to

previously struck areas, the blows became a little harder,

bringing the blood to the surface. A warm rosy glow

covered the dangling girl. A sheen of perspiration covered

both of them.

Gradually, he had been able to build up her tolerance to

the pain so that she could accept much harder blows. The

next implement he had chosen to use on her would give

magnitudes greater sensation than the butter soft strap.

He picked up the tasseled riding crop, feeling the solid

heft of it in his had. It had a nice stiff body with a

whippy tail. The handle fit easily in his palm. It was

well balanced, almost like a sword. He made a practice

swing and the evil swish sent goose bumps scattering across

his skin.

Sandi had her eyes closed and didn’t see the change in

whips. She was in ecstasy, the buildup of pain boiling

over into the intense pleasure that she longed for, that

she needed. She was so wrapped up in her own world she

didn't hear the practice swing. The first lash with the

crop caught her by surprise and raised her up stiff in the

restraints.

Ben watched a satisfying dark red welt form at the base of

her ass cheek. The tassel had snapped into the crevice

between them and stung the flesh of her asshole. He didn't

wait, but let the next lash fall across her upper thigh.

She farted loudly and came at the same time, her slick cum

splashing out onto the floor. She had not known she could

squirt like that.

He worked over her entire body, leaving short, deep red

welts and tassel marks about one inch apart on every

available piece of skin. He labored steadily for quite

some time, being thorough until he only had her breasts,

her lower tummy and her pussy to go. He had saved the best

for last.

He stopped his whipping and released the lever that allowed

him to turn the rack. He rotated her so that she lay face

up, her striped butt sagging down from her body weight and

exhaustion. The waist belt quickly brought her body back

level and relieved some of the tension on her wrists and

ankles.

Sandi had left sanity behind as he whipped her underarms.

She had not realized how erogenous that area could be. As

she slipped into a erotic delirium, she made a note to try

it with Karin. She would love it. The stinging lashes to

her tits boosted her up and over the perilous peak of her

climax several times. Each successive blow ripped her

higher and higher. Ben avoided the tender nipples out of

compassion, but he covered the rest of the soft mounds

thoroughly.

The waist belt covered and protected part of her tummy. So

Ben went for the brass ring. He stepped under the bar and

moved to stand in between her legs. He firmly laid a well-

place slash with the crop on the inside of each shapely

thigh. Her semi-conscious body arched up as if in

invitation of the final blows.

The first lash to her cunt split the lips and landed

directly on her clit. She convulsed wildly. The second

lash buried the tassel in her vagina, mauling the delicate

tissues there. She shuddered violently again. A final

upward blow drew a cherry red welt across her anal ring and

up her ass crack. She screamed in ecstasy as she passed

out.

Ben's rock hard prick had been slapping against his legs

with each blow. His breathing was ragged as he stepped up

to the unconscious woman and plunged his cock into her

pussy. He stood still, letting the spasms of her mega-

orgasm milk his blood muscle up and down. Fully seated in

her cunt, he waited for her to regain some of her senses.

The warm, moist tunnel gripped his prick as if hanging on

for dear life. The fit of the two procreative organs was

perfect.

Her felt and heard the low growl from the fettered woman.

Sandi woke to feel wonderfully stuffed. He was inside her

at last! Her body burst to life, every erotic nerve in her

being triggered by the pulsing rod of flesh buried in her

pussy. She literally vibrated on his shaft.

Ben reached forward and grasped her hips, steadying himself

as he worked his cock in and out of her clasping cunt. He

established a slow rhythm with deep penetrating strokes.

He watched his prick withdraw from the warm sheath, the

soft tissues of her pussy clinging to the shaft as if

trying to keep it from leaving. His rhythm quickened as he

felt himself approaching the critical point. He didn't try

to hold back, but pounded into her as hard as could,

slamming into her soft thighs with his hips on every

forward lunge. Her luscious tits jiggled as if they

floated on her chest.

Pounding into her one last time, he yelled his ecstasy as

he came, then grunted with each additional clenching spurt

of jism that came out of his prick. Satiated, he leaned on

his hands, gasping for breath. They were both exhausted

and satisfied from the initial session.

Ben caught his breath and turned the frame upright. After

taking off her waist belt, he released her ankles and

wrists. Sandi collapsed in a pile on the floor. She was

delirious, out of her mind in orgasmic splendor. Every

touch, every sound, every smell sent her senses reeling

with sensual delight. She was happy, fulfilled, complete.

She knew she could love this man.

Ben gathered his mystery lady in his arms and carried her

upstairs to the sitting room. He laid her gently on the

couch and cradled her head in his arms. Softly, he cooed

and sang to her the comforting sounds and lullabies he had

thought he had long forgotten. As they cuddled, he began

telling her of his life, of his happiness at finally

meeting the woman of his dreams, Lady X, of his feelings

for her, and of his determination to convince her to reveal

her identity to him. Somehow, he told her, he would win

her love.

He watched her eyes as he spoke, her bright intelligent

eyes responding to his words. He knew she understood his

words, knew she felt the same.

Sandi's heart was torn. She felt she loved him, even after

so short a time. She couldn’t risk telling him who she

was. Not yet. It wasn't the right time.

Karin found them in that position. Ben was softly talking

to her and stoking her silky skin, freely weeping now in

his love and frustration. Sandi was curled up on his lap

like a little child, totally at ease, watching him speak,

reaching up occasionally to catch a tear falling from his

face.

Karin let them run their course until he was silent. She

touched him on the shoulder and motioned for him to give

Lady X to her. Karin lifted her friend easily and walked

towards the door. She grinned to herself as she noted the

size of the sleeping monster he was equipped with. Sandi

must have enjoyed that! She turned at the door.

"Please get dressed and come back to this room. There is a

shower in that room over there, if you want to clean up as

well. I wish to speak to you before you leave."

Karin carried Sandi to a bedroom upstairs. She unlaced the

tight corset and removed the boots from her legs. The hood

was eased off her head after loosening the laces in the

back. Karin ran her hands over her friend's body, looking

for any serious injuries. She found none, and that pleased

her. There were only the marks of well-whipped flesh. Ben

had been careful – and skillful. But she had known that

when she had found them together. Their passion was

evident, as was Sandi's dilemma.

Sandi threw her arms around Karin and sobbed into her neck

for several minutes. It was not from the pain, but the

sorrow. Her heart was breaking. She had found her true

love at last, but she couldn't have him, just as Karin had

found Sam, and lost him. The sobs wracked her slender

frame as Karin comforted her.

"SHIT! Love sucks!" Sandi muttered softly.

"I know, Honey. I know. You OK?"

"Yeah. God, he was good."

"Uh-huh, I’ll bet. Into the tub, then. Soak those stripes

for a while. I'll join you in a bit. I have to let our

guest out."

Sandi got into the large bathtub and eased her battered

frame down in the steaming water. Karin leaned over and

kissed her cheek before leaving the room.

Downstairs, the nervous patrolman paced across the room.

He froze when she entered the room. "Is she all right? Is

everything OK? I didn't hurt her, did I?” He blushed at

the stupidity of that question. “Well, not too badly, I

mean." His concern for her was written all over his face.

Karin sat down before answering. She motioned him to a

seat as well. His heart sank. No one gave good new

sitting down.

"To answer your questions," she began, "Yes and No!"

His face paled at the thought he had hurt his love. He

trembled and slumped in the chair.

"Her body is fine, nothing is broken or torn. You were

very careful with her. I thank you for that. It's her

heart, I'm afraid."

Karin smiled at him a sad smile he didn't understand.

"She's lost it to you and it's breaking in two."

He still didn't understand. She chuckled. Sometimes men

were so stupid!

"Ben, she is in love with you!"

Light dawned in his eyes as her meaning finally sunk in.

She felt the same way he did! He lost all reason, jumped

up and started to run across the room. He had to go to

her, to see her, to soothe her aches and pains, to ease her

aching heart.

He started up the stairs.

"FREEZE!"

The command was followed by a click of a hammer being

pulled back. His policeman's training overrode his

genitals, and he froze.

"I can't allow you to see her."

He turned to her slowly. "But we love each other..."

"I'm sorry, Ben. I truly am." She lowered the gun and

moved it out of sight, as if it was never there. She

continued. "I know how you both feel, more than you’ll

ever know. It must be her decision to reveal herself to

you. She has a tremendous amount at stake, more than you

do, believe me. If you try to find out who she is, you

will never see her again. You could ruin her life, in many

ways.

"Please, accept what you do have now, for now. The time

you have and will still have in the future. Do not throw

that away. Later, well, later will take care of itself.

Don’t fuck this up." That last was said with a tinge of an

iron threat. It got through to him.

He nodded. Tears blurred his eyes as he made his way to

the front door and out to his car. He sat there for a long

time until he could control his weeping enough to drive

safely.

Karin watched until his car pulled away and went upstairs.

"Thanks for the gun, Sandi."

"Did you need it?"

"He was half-way up the stairs before he stopped."

Karin stripped her clothes off and slid in behind her

friend/lover. The two broken-hearted friends held each

other in their arms; each alone with her own thoughts of a

lost lover, each with a broken heart. They soaked away the

pains of the afternoon and of a lifetime.

Chapter 14

Officer Ben Johnson's career took off like a shot after

that first ‘Special Assignment’. He would have liked to

brag about what happened, but who would have believed him?

An assignment to have kinky sex with a beautiful woman –

well, he hoped she was beautiful, anyway. With a body like

that, who cared, really! Besides, he had given his word

not to say anything or pursue the relationship outside of

work.

His lieutenant nagged him for details, his insistent

requests falling just short of a direct order. A discrete

call from the Police HQ told him it was a security matter

and to leave it be. The caller did not identify herself,

only that she was a ‘friend,’ – the lieutenant wondered

which secretary had the ‘hots’ for him – and that she did

not want to see the lieutenant get hurt, just by being too

curious. The message got through, but the lieutenant was

pissed.

He immediately confronted Ben, and accused him of taking a

‘family’ matter up the chain of command. After Ben was

finally able to convince him that he had not informed the

Commissioner’s office of the persistent inquiries, it

dawned on the senior officer that his stationhouse might be

bugged or, worse, under investigation by Internal Affairs.

He had his office, the squad room, the locker room, and the

cafeteria swept for electronic listening devices, anywhere

he could remember talking to Ben about anything. When the

sweep revealed 15 listening devices, some as much as 10

years old, the lieutenant shit lava. He had the entire

building and every squad car scoured for bugs. He was

astounded at the incredible number of devices found.

Suddenly, the matter of Ben Johnson and his dealings with

the Commissioner’s office became a minor issue. He had

major problems in his precinct, and, in all probability,

those problems infected the entire force.

Ben was transferred soon after the bugs were found. In a

way, his lieutenant was sorry to see him go. He felt Ben

had the makings of a fine policeman, but given where he was

transferred to, it was obvious someone else had noticed Ben

as well. Or Ben had kissed a very big political ass. He

hadn’t thought Ben was that type. To be honest, he was

kind of busy.

Ben’s first assignment took him to HQ, where he was in

charge of guarding a stack of old records. With nothing

else to do, he read through the files, organizing them as

he went along. One day in the lunchroom, he overheard a

couple of secretaries. They were talking about a critical

file that had gone missing. The press was trying to make

it out a some kind of cover-up, and her boss was catching

Hell for it. So, by extension, was she. Ben recognized

the name of the file as one that he had. Ben inquired of

the proper way to transfer files between departments, and

sent the critical file to the secretary who needed it.

His actions came to the attention of the Commissioner. At

his strong urging, Ben requested, and received a posting

from dead-file guard duty to the office of the Special

Investigator in the Commissioner's office. He would be

reporting to the Special Investigator herself, Captain

Sandra Billings. Having heard of her reputation as an ‘Ice

Princess,’ a ‘ball-buster,’ and that she was a flaming

lebsbo, Ben was not altogether thrilled at the prospects of

working with the wonder woman herself. Rumor had it that

her previous assistants – all three of them - had not gone

on to bigger and better postings after their time in her

office. One had resigned, one had been demoted, and the

other was serving time. But it was better than guarding

boxes of old files. Or, so he hoped.

Cap. Billings, or Sandi, as she had him call her, was

neither overly friendly nor was she a cold bitch when they

finally met for his interview. She was all business, and

that business was a clean police force. She told Ben

straight out that she had been investigating him herself.

She told him she didn’t give a shit about his politics, his

religion or his sexual preferences – she paused here to let

him know she knew exactly what those preferences were – ,

as long as he kept them out of the office and they didn’t

interfere with his duties.

Ben asked her directly about his three predecessors. She

told him. The one who retired had been 65 years old. She

still volunteered her services in her office. That was who

would be training Ben. The other two had been indicted for

taking bribes. The one who had been demoted was simply

more clever than the one doing time. She told him straight

out that she was confident that both would be behind bars

eventually. It was rare for a skunk to change its after

shave.

Ben assumed her brusque manner was a result of her zeal to

have the cleanest police force possible. His new boss took

each infraction of the law by an on-duty officer as a

personal defeat. Her ardent manner was infectious and soon

he was viewing her in an admiring light. She became his

hero, or heroine, to be exact. He never noticed the slight

tremor in her hands, or the tiny gasps she made when they

bumped elbows or knees. He didn’t see the lust in her eyes

as she covertly watched him as they went about their

duties.

It took all of Sandi’s self-control not to tell him, not to

drop a hint about who she was, what he meant to her, or

anything related to bondage or pain. As time passed, it

became slightly easier to be with him. They settled into

their roles as colleagues, boss and employee. As they

became more comfortable with one another, both of them

loosened up a bit about their personal lives. It was only

natural. They saw each other on a daily basis; often

spending extended time together in tense situations on

stakeouts. Ben took her opening up as a sign he had passed

her investigation of him. He was relieved that she trusted

him enough to share with him some of the details of her

life. They often needed to rely on each other for backup,

so it was only natural that their relationship gradually

evolved into one of partners.

The Special Assignments continued during this period and

they posed a problem for Ben. The arrangements didn’t come

from the Commissioner’s office any more. The other woman,

Karin, arranged the following visit each time before he

left the mansion. To Ben, that meant they were no longer

police business and that he didn’t need to report these

activities to his lovely boss. The fact that they had been

initiated from there bothered him tremendously, however.

He had tried to tell the captain about them right up front,

but she had seemed unusually uncomfortable about discussing

them, especially when he told her it related to sex. She

told him as long as it was consensual and drug-free, she

didn’t feel it was necessary to go in to it in any detail.

What he did on his own time was his business. But, she

said, it did explain his occasional visits to that fancy

mansion. She told him the address. He was shaken that she

knew the specific house, but glad she was not going to stop

him from his visits with his Lady X. He thought he

probably would have resigned the force first.

At first, while he was still at the precinct, the visits

with Lady X were scheduled about every two to three weeks,

sometimes during the week, sometimes on weekends. The

visits were always on his scheduled day off, which didn’t

surprise him, somehow. When he was transferred to HQ, they

settled down to about once a month, always on a weekend.

HQ did have its privileges, one of which was a regular

schedule.

Ben hadn't looked at another woman since that first

session. Although obtaining sexual release only once a

month built up a lot of sexual tension in the young man, he

remained fully committed to his mystery lover. When he

realized this several months later, he was shocked. He

hadn’t been this faithful to anyone, ever. And it wasn’t

difficult. He had no interest in anyone but Lady X.

Not even the close proximity to the best looking woman in

the department piqued his interest. Make that ‘women’.

Hell, the whole fucking department could have been models,

nude or otherwise, had they wanted. Fucking gorgeous.

Captain Billings reputation for fairness attracted nearly

every female employee in the force and many from out of

state. She only hired the best. The best workers, the

best built and the best looking. She staffed it with very

attractive young females, mostly single, but that was

incidental to their skill and ability to do their jobs.

Ben was the only male on her staff, a token of sorts. He

thought it ironic and it gave him a new perspective and

appreciation for the lone females isolated out in the

various precincts. Sandi took pains to quietly observe him

with the other staff members in the office. Ben treated

each with respect and deference, never responding to their

blatant invitations to dinner, a quickie, or other office

shenanigans.

Most, if not all, of the female staff had crushes on the

handsome young officer. He could have had any of them he

wanted, whether they were married or not, anytime he

wanted. After several uncomfortable –for Ben, anyway –

incidents, the Captain had a ‘come to Jesus’ meeting with

the ladies in the office. She informed them that if they

could not behave appropriately and with decorum while in

the office, they could request an immediate transfer, no

questions asked. No one asked. Ben may have been nice,

but they all knew they would never find another job like

they had. Besides, as the Captain had said, the building

was full of pricks, both literally and figuratively.

Sandi wasn’t jealous of the women; in fact, she

intentionally placed Ben in harm’s way, when it came to

beautiful women. She tried to tell herself she wouldn’t

have minded if he had taken advantage of the occasional

situation. It would have made it easier, in a way.

But he didn’t, and as time went by, he persisted in

maintaining his devotion to his mysterious girlfriend.

Sandi was impressed by the strength of his resolve. It

touched her deeply, and one day she realized she had fallen

completely in love with him. It shook her that she would

be susceptible to something as normal as ‘love.’ It didn’t

stop her from taking advantage of the situation, however,

and making it as hard for him as she could. She knew his

schedule, after all.

Ben himself was amazed at the depth of his commitment.

Before Lady X, he would have fucked his way through the

staff in week, or less, then gone back for seconds. Even

when he had been engaged it hadn't stopped him from the

occasional dalliance. Lady X had changed his life.

She would test Ben, usually in that long week just prior to

his visit with Lady X. That week he would be assigned to

work closely with one of the most infatuated of her

attractive staff, usually in an isolated location, like a

motel room. She found herself hoping he would hold out

against the temptation to fuck the other woman. He never

disappointed her. She could tell from the fire in his eyes

when he walked in the door that his level of sexual

frustration was heightened. He was ready to fuck a knotty

pine. She especially liked it that he would take his

frustrations out on her during their session.

One day, about two days after one of his Special

Assignments, Sandi began to ask him about his girlfriend.

Ben had been contentedly quiet – she called him ‘smug’ –

the last day or so. She teasingly accused him of finally

getting laid, and asked him when she was going to get to

meet the mystery woman. Sandi was so sore from his ardent

attentions, she could barely sit down on her bruised ass.

Ben blushed a deep shade of red, and fumbled a reply. She

thought about keeping after him, but a telephone call

interrupted them.

As the months went by, Ben remained evasive about his girl

friend. Sandi teased him incessantly now. Whenever he

came to work relaxed, she would say he must have gotten

some the night before. She was remarkably perceptive, he

thought, but never connected the dots. Sandi’s

aggressiveness was a defense. She was glowing as well, as

most of the female staff noted, but while he was back

peddling, he didn’t notice. She wheedled, cajoled, and

teased him whenever they were alone, but he wouldn't tell

her about his girlfriend. None of the other staff ever

admitted it if they had figured it out or not, but the odds

of both of them getting some at the same exact irregular

intervals without doing each other was astronomically high.

They could figure out Ben, though. It was as if he didn’t

know he was screwing the boss.

Ben still met with her at the Saunders’ mansion, always

with the beautiful Mrs. Saunders as the hostess. Each

time, his lover appeared in her hood, hidden and soundless.

He had never once heard her voice. She, however, had grown

addicted to his voice.

Ben had begun focusing on one body part of Lady X per

session, the part chosen seemingly at random. He would

heat that area of flesh with his open hand, a whip or a

paddle until it would sizzle, then keep it that way until

she would tense up and cream her slit with even a slight

caress on the tormented area. Her cunt watered when she

thought about what her breasts would feel like when he had

finished with them. She would probably have to take some

time off, if he ever focused on them. She hoped he would,

and soon.

At the end of the sessions, when he had sated his

frustrations on her tender flesh, when he had pounded his

hard throbbing meat into her sopping cunt, when he had

satisfied his every sexual whim on her defenseless willing

body, he would pick her up and hold her like a little girl,

cradling her to his chest. It was then he would talk to

her, rocking softly as he did.

All he could see were the expressive deep blue eyes of his

Lady X. He loved talking to those eyes. He told them

everything. He told them of his love for her, of his hopes

and dreams. He told her about herself, his boss, and how

she teased him about his mystery girlfriend. He told her

how much he admired Captain Billings’ mind and her desire

and ability to do her job. He told her about the salacious

offers from the female staff and his honest reaction to

them.

Sandi watched his face as he talked, feeling his words as

well as hearing them. She lay with her ear against his

chest and heard the rumbling of his voice crashing through

his lungs. She had long ago decided that if this was all

she could ever have of her lover, that this was enough. It

was more than Karin had. Her tears had ceased to

continually fill her eyes when he was there. They only

wept in the darkness of the lonely nights between visits.

Ben would gaze into those eyes and could see her love for

him. Over time, they developed a simple code so he could

ask her questions. They started with a simple ‘yes/no’ and

evolved it from there. It was crude communication, but to

them it was poetry.

It became obvious to Lady X that Ben was in awe of his

Captain, for many positive reasons, but not for her beauty.

He was aware of how beautiful she was, yes, but she was a

little miffed that he wasn’t attracted to her. She shared

those feelings with Karin, who actually fell out of her

chair, laughing. The big tough policelady was jealous of

herself! When Sandi looked at it from that perspective,

she had to laugh, too.

Once, Karin had asked Ben if he would consider a one-time

change in the routine. She told him that Lady X had a

special request. She did not wish to be beaten that day,

although she would gladly submit if that were his desire.

Lady X craved to taste him, just once, and she wished to

service him today with her mouth and her body. The catch

was that Ben had to agree to be bound, blindfolded and to

use earplugs. Ben squirmed. He was clearly uncomfortable

with the idea of being bound. He had tried before and had

found he couldn’t deal with the restriction or the

darkness. He had freaked out. He was still terrified of

the darkness.

Karen listened to his excuses. She explained to him how

important this was to Lady X. Also, there would be no

pain. Lady X sensed his terror, but begged him to trust

her. He dragged his feet until Karin promised to remain in

the room with them, ready to cut him out of his restraints

at the first sign of distress.

Ben reluctantly agreed. He was taken upstairs to a

feminine bedroom. He stripped naked, lay on the bed and

was then blindfolded. A pair of high quality headphones

was placed over his head to muffle any outside noise.

Karin’s voice came through the headset, calming and

assuring him of his safety. The sounds of one of the

whipping sessions between Karin and Sandi played in the

background, then became his sole focus. The two women had

recorded it especially for this occasion. Karin had been

particularly vocal, as Sandi, who herself was gagged to

prevent him from hearing her voice, had beaten her. It was

one of the most erotic sounds he had ever heard. He knew

it was Karin’s voice he heard, but he wanted so much for it

to be Lady X’s voice, that that is what it became.

His hands were cuffed over his head in as comfortable a

position as possible and the session began. He was

caressed, massaged, stoked and tickled. He swore he felt

tears fall as his lover’s soft, silky hair trailed over his

facial features. They kissed for the first time. It was

long and passionate.

He declared to his unseen partner that he loved her. He

begged her to let him see her. Each successive

announcement of his love brought a desperate hug or an

acknowledging squeeze from her, until he finally realized

that he was causing her pain. His sobs of heartfelt

apology hurt her even more. She finally silenced him by

taking his breath away.

Lady X knelt between his open thighs. She had cradled his

sac and prick in her initial caresses, but now she focused

on these alone. Light touches of her sharp fingernails

dragged down his shaft, sending the hardened muscle into

overdrive. He felt enormous, as she had to use both hands

to circle the base of his cock. He stopped breathing as

her sharp nails toyed with his scrotum. His life and his

bloated balls were literally in her strong hands. He never

realized how strong her hands were before. Or how sharp

her nails were. She toyed with him, with his emotions,

with his fear. Her gentle squeezes became more firm, but

never uncomfortable. She squeezed just hard enough to

infuse his system with a jolt of adrenaline.

He felt her shift on the bed. Her hard nipples grazed the

insides of his thighs. He could feel her full breasts

molding around his hard muscles as she leaned forward. He

waited. He waited. He waited longer. He bucked up his

hips in frustration, but stopped as her hands had a firm

grip on his nuts that tightened when he tried to enter her

mouth. She was so close to his prick, he knew it. He

could feel the hot moist breath coming from her ovaled lips

as she hovered over it. He whined, he begged. He promised

her anything, everything, and still she withheld his

pleasure. He screamed, then cried, frustrated beyond

caring that he was bound.

With a sigh, he gave up his struggling. He resigned his

pleasure to her, to let her guide him this time. He would

no longer dictate what her gift would be. He would accept

her gift to him, whatever it was. It was a momentous

surrender for him, one she could never have hoped for.

Her mouth on his prick was glorious. She swallowed his

entire length in one smooth downward swallow. She let it

sit there, tightly encased in a warm sucking tube. She

felt him swelling in her throat, the familiar sign of his

impending cum. He tried to warn her, but she stayed where

she was. When he exploded in her mouth and throat, he shot

so hard, he was sure he had passed a nut.

Sandi held him with her hands and mouth, urging every last

drop from him. When she needed breath, she lifted off

slightly and bobbed her head up and down. He stayed hard

for her, allowing her to take her own sensual enjoyment

from his persistent erection.

Moving around, she straddled his head with her thighs and

lowered her pussy to his lips. He knew how to do this, and

attacked her voraciously. She controlled his appetite with

her firm grip on his balls until he slowed and found her

rhythm. It was a novel experience for him to let a woman

lead, and he lost focus several times, only to be firmly

taken in hand, literally. She had her own reasons for her

slow paced fucking. She didn’t want to wear him out. They

brought each other to mutual satisfaction in a long, lazy

session that left both of them primed for more.

Still in a feverish state, Sandi lay beside her blinded

lover. Her fingers traced intricate love patterns in his

chest hairs and around his nipples. Teasingly, she tweaked

one of his nipples and saw it perk up from her attentions.

Seeing his reaction to her slightest touch, she flicked at

both of them mercilessly, tickling him on the pectorals.

From there she preceded down his ribs as she tormented him,

bringing violent convulsions of laughter from him.

Eventually she straddled him, placing one knee on each side

up his hips. Resting her hands on his chest, she moved

around until she captured the head up his cock with the

mouth of her cunt. She slowly sank down the length of his

shaft, planting his prick firmly in her pussy, and then

rode him like a cowgirl. Each time her steed flagged in

his ardor, she would drag her sharp fingernails across his

ribs or tweak a nipple, spurring him on again. He bucked

mightily up into her as he jerked out his second load of

the day, raising up his loins as if trying to unseat his

beautiful rider.

He couldn't hear her squeals of delight at his efforts or

the peals of giggles and laughter at this delicious freedom

the lovely Lady X had with her lover at long last. He did

feel the sharp bite of the nails as she dug in to his broad

chest and the squeezing of her cunt muscles as she came

with him. It made the whole thing seem so much more

intense to him, to be without sight. He cried out, begging

her to relent, to let him see her face.

She snuggled down into his arms and touched her gentle

fingers to his lips. At first he didn't understand, but

with her gentle insistence he soon understood that she did

not want him to talk. It was difficult not to express his

feelings to this woman. Reaching down, Sandi fondled his

slippery manhood. She heard the catch in his breathing as

she again dragged her fingernails across the loose skin and

giggled. The tired organ miraculously began to swell as

she continued to rake her nails across it. She took it

lovingly into her mouth, tasting her own dried juices on it

as she sucked it to full size.

She straddled him once again, this time facing his feet.

Firmly grabbing his cock, she bent it back until it was

pointing straight up. Lowering herself, she brought the

tip of his prick to the entrance of her anus. He had never

taken her there and it was driving her crazy. She had been

completely at his mercy for months and he had spared her

ass hole any major violation, other than his fingers or

thumbs.

She pushed down harder and grunted as her tough sphincter

resisted the reverse intrusion. A soft plopping sound

signaled the surrender of the anular ring. His swollen

prick head spread the vanquished tissues aside and entered

the tight tunnel. She settled herself steadily on the

rigid pole until he was completely embedded in her ass.

She felt stuffed in the most obscene way possible. In a

way, she was glad he had let her discover this thrilling

intrusion on her own, but a dark part of her lusted after

the feeling of being taken there by force. Maybe after

this, maybe after she had broken the ice, so to speak, he

would take her this way. When she was tied and helpless to

resist. At that delicious thought, she squeezed her

sphincter tightly over the long hard cock and listened to

her lover babble incoherently.

Ben couldn't believe it when his cock began to rise the

third time. Twice was his limit. Always had been till

now, anyway. Then Lady X had sucked him up to full

strength and he had relaxed into the anticipation of

another wonderful blowjob. His sigh of disappointment was

soft and inaudible. Then the most incredible tight

moistness he had ever experienced, including a couple of

virgin pussies.

But this, this wasn't her mouth or her pussy. It had to be

her ass! He had dreamed of that wrinkled orifice since

Karin had mentioned it the first day, but he had always

hesitated. One of his first girlfriends had bled terribly

when he had attempted to enter her ass, and he had never

tried again. He thought he was too big.

Now she was doing it herself! Easily! It fit and it was

glorious. He tentatively bucked his hips up into those

spongy cheeks. They drove themselves down in response,

desiring his prick in her ass.

The babbling she heard was his attempt to tell her all of

this at the same time. It came out as a blurb and she

giggled.

They settled into a steady fucking that let them both build

to their greatest climax of the session. Sweat dripped

from her nipples and down her sides as she labored toward

their peak of mutual fulfillment. When it came, it sneaked

up on both of them. Sandi was suddenly shaking violently

on his spurting rod, shouting obscenities she didn’t know

she knew. It felt like she was being filled with gallons

of cum juice as he emptied his load into her.

Ben felt like her ass was sucking the very life out of him.

The third time was a charm for him and he blew his load

into her rectum with all the force of a hurricane. He

actually lost consciousness as the last of the spasms

wracked his valiant rod. He was still out cold as his

prick pulled out of her stretched anus and plopped tiredly

on his patch of pubic hair.

Sandi lay contentedly beside her lover and drifted off to a

light sleep. As they slept, Karin cleaned off his shit-

fouled prick with a warm towel. This had been arranged with

Sandi before hand. He never noticed the intrusion.

Ben woke several hours later to the sensation of a hot,

sucking mouth on his prick. As he began babbling

incoherently from the pain of his fourth erection, Lady X

lifted her head off his cock and engulfed him in her

scalding cunt. She used all of her numerous tricks,

talents and skills to bring him to his phenomenal fourth

and final climax of the session.

Sore, sweaty and greedy, she nudged at his flacid prick,

begging for just one more ride. When he wouldn’t respond

any more, she let him rest. She stretched out beside him,

holding his exhausted body in her arms. In the silence,

she remembered how he would talk to her after a hard

session when he held her in his arms.

Smiling, she began to speak to him for the first time as

his lover. This time, she poured out her heart to him. He

could feel the vibrations of her voice as she placed her

head on his chest. She could feel his strong heart

beating, and that reassured her. She knew it was silly,

but she felt that his very body responded to her words.

When she had started speaking, Karin made sure the headset

was firmly in place over his ears and that the audiotape

was still playing. Ben didn’t hear Sandi tell him who she

was. He didn’t hear how she had arranged for his transfer,

and how she had tempted him with all those women. He

didn’t hear her say how proud she was of him, not only of

his commitment to her, but of his integrity and decency.

He didn’t hear the cries of anguish and frustration as she

told him how much she loved him and that she would love him

forever. He didn’t hear her when she fell silent, spent,

sated, satisfied. All he felt was the hot tears that

flowed from both of them, mingling and pooling on his

muscular chest.

He did feel her mouth as she cleaned his lifeless prick

with her tongue. He didn't hear her tell him that she

agreed with him: They did taste good together.

Chapter 15

It was several months later that Sandi asked Karin to do a

special session with her. They didn’t do these special

sessions often. They tended to last a long time, and both

were drained emotionally, sexually and physically at the

end of one of them. By tacit agreement, they didn’t happen

often. And that helped keep that special flavor to them.

Sandi didn't give a reason for why she thought now would be

a good time for a special session, but hinted she had a

surprise. Karin wasn't really in the mood, but her friend

was persuasive. Since the instigator was the ‘top’ in

these sessions, Karin knew that all she had to do was show

up, at least initially. And it had been a long time.…

Sandi had acquired a new restraint system for this session.

The shrouded shapeless pile of equipment got several covert

glances from Karin as Sandi slowly and teasingly prepared

her for the session. She deliberated over each item of

clothing she stripped from the passive Karin, stroking and

petting each new area of exposed skin as she did, slowly

bringing the pot to boil.

Karin was now in the mood, i.e. horny and naked. Sandi

moved her to the center of the large basement dungeon. She

had pushed the bondage frame that was usually in the center

up against the wall. First she placed a thick leather belt

around Karin’s calves, binding them tightly together. When

it was securely in place, there were two small wide cuffs

on each side on the outsides of her calves.

With a teasing look directly into her eyes, Sandi put her

hands on her friend’s shoulders and urged her to her knees.

She then pushed backwards on her shoulders until Karin

toppled back. Sandi caught her and broke her fall. She

laid her gently on her back, her legs bent back under her.

Taking one wrist, Sandi pulled it down past the cuff on the

calf belt until she could fasten the cuff tightly around

her upper arm. Repeating that binding with the other arm

left Karin arched in a painful bow on the floor, resting on

her knees, shins, shoulders, and the back of her neck. Two

additional straps fastened Karin's ankles to her upper arms

right next to her armpits. A short spreader bar between

her knees kept her knees spread apart, exposing her cunt to

the open air. Metal fasteners from the D-rings in the

straps were secured to rings set into the floor. That

ensured she wouldn't tip over. Sandi looked the captive

woman over carefully, until she was satisfied. Grinning at

her friend with a mischievous, evil smile, they both knew

Karin wasn't going anywhere.

Sandi stuffed a cushion under her shoulders, relieving some

of the strain on Karin's neck.

"That better?"

"Yes." Karin was beginning to feel the tremors of

anticipation. She was terribly exposed in this position,

the skin of her belly stretched tight.

Sandi went over to the wall and selected a long buggy whip

from the wall. It was one of the cruelest whips

imaginable, especially when used on human flesh. The two

women had it gotten for decoration only, not to use. It’s

visual impact was enough.

Sandi liked the sound it made as it swished and cracked and

snapped in the air. For what she wanted tonight, sound was

all she needed. At first, anyway. She looped the wrist

strap around her wrist and pulled it tight. She didn’t

want any accidents with this weapon.

SNAP. Sandi let the long flexible whip crack just above

Karin’s exposed stomach, then settle softly on the

untouched skin. The sensation was almost the same as a

hard slash. Adrenaline coursed through both women’s

systems.

"I had my Annual Performance Review today," Sandi started

out casually.

"Oh, really? How was it?" Karin thought it was strange to

talk about something they would normally discuss over a

glass of wine, but what the hell, she wasn't going

anywhere. Actually, Karin now realized it was odd that she

wasn’t gagged. Normally there was no talking. They didn’t

need verbal abuse to get excited.

Sandi was silent for a moment. When she did speak, it was

with the quiet intensity of a person who was extremely

angry. It was all an act, but she had had plenty of

practice in her job. Good Cop, Bad Cop and all. "How dare

you play with my career like a snot-nosed high school

girl?" The whip snapped several times around the bound

woman in emphasis.

Karin's blood froze. She had discovered her meddling.

"OH, SANDI," she wailed. "I'm sorry. I just wanted to

help..."

"So I couldn't do it by myself? Is that what you thought?

You little BITCH!"

"NO, NO, NO. I just wanted you to be happy. I did it for

you."

All this time, Sandi had been striding back and forth just

inside Karin's field of vision. She brought the whip down

several times on the floor, each time with a loud slap.

She watched Karin's taut body tense with each slap. She

was just getting ready to let Karin in on the joke and that

she had known from the beginning that Karin was meddling,

when she tripped. Her high heel caught on something and

she started to fall.

Forgetting about the whip, she put out her hand to catch

herself. She didn’t want to land on Karin while she was

tied so rigidly. The additional weight could injure her

neck, possibly seriously. The wrist strap kept the whip in

her hand as she caught herself, and the heavy shaft of the

whip came down with great force across the soft tender skin

of Karin's lower stomach.

Sandi didn't understand the scream she heard until she saw

the blood oozing from the cut the whip had made.

"Oh Karin, Honey, I'm sorry. It was an accident."

Karin turned her head away from the woman and closed her

eyes, steeling herself for another blow. She flinched at

the very touch of Sandi's fingers. Sandi fumbled with the

buckles and straps not being able to get them off of Karin

fast enough. She got her to her feet and helped Karin into

the bathroom they had installed in the cellar. There, she

treated the cut with alcohol and a soft compress. She

helped Karin upstairs to her bed and laid her down.

Karin said nothing the whole time. She wouldn't even look

at Sandi.

Karin felt betrayed. Her friend, her lover, had struck her

in anger. She had tricked her and savagely beat her. She

didn't trust her anymore. She had lost another lover and

she was all-alone again. She withdrew into herself and

wept invisible tears.

Sandi was devastated as well. She knew she was a good

actress and that Karin hadn't known she was joking with

her. She saw the empty look in Karin's eyes and it pierced

her to her heart. She sat by Karin's bed all night

watching the tortured sleep of her forlorn friend. She

stayed by her bed all the next day and the next night, as

well. Karin didn't move or speak. Sandi changed the

dressings on the cut and made sure there would be no

infection.

The second day, Karin spoke to her in a dull lifeless

voice. "I'll be OK. You need some sleep."

Sandi burst out crying. She had held off until now, but

now the flood started and she wailed and begged for

forgiveness.

Karin felt a twinge of sadness for her friend. She

realized now it had been an accident, but it shouldn't even

have happened. The aggressor had to be in control. She

couldn't completely trust Sandi anymore, not in that

special way. She would miss that.

Karin reached out a hand for Sandi's hand. "It's OK. I

forgive you, Sandi. But … never again."

Those words thrilled Sandi and cut her to the quick at the

same time. She bent down and kissed Karin’s hand. "I got

promoted. To Captain. It's about five years early. The

Commissioner said that I am in line to be the first female

Commissioner in the city's history." She pulled a small

box from her blouse pocket. "I'm sorry I spoiled the

surprise. It was supposed to be a surprise for you for all

your help. I couldn't have done it without you. You have

to know that."

"I didn't know you felt that way," Karin replied. She took

the offered gift. "Thank you." She paused. "How did you

find out I helped get you the job?"

Sandi paused. "I'm a cop, Karin. Our careers are fixed in

stone from the day we leave the Academy, unless we screw up

or solve the mother of all crimes. I had done neither.

Therefore, someone had to have helped me. You're the only

one who cared enough to help."

"Oh.” She thought a minute. “Why didn't you say

something?"

"You were having too much fun enjoying your little secret.

I didn't want to spoil it for you." Tears welled up in

Sandi's eyes. "I'm sorry I spoiled it for you now."

Karin reached up and pulled her tired friend into the bed

with her. Sandi snuggled into her side and cried herself

to sleep. Karin stroked her hair and pondered the loss of

the innocence between them. She wondered if they would

ever get it back or if it was something that, once lost,

was gone forever.

Sandi never raised the subject of restraint or pain again,

although she was surprised when Karin continued to hostess

the Special Assignments with her and Ben with as much care

and attention as before. She realized the depth of the

love Karin had for her and the pain she must have caused

her.

The gift box sat unopened on her dressing table for a long

time. Sandi and Karin continued to share each other's beds

regularly, but now they were separate people looking for

different things.

The small box caught Karin's attention one afternoon while

Sandi was out. She picked it up and turned it over in her

hand. There was a slight rattle inside. She opened it up

and saw a beautiful diamond name plate on a necklace. On

one side was the word 'Karin' and on the other 'Sam.' It

must have cost several thousand dollars with all the

diamonds on it. She was touched.

She picked it up and tried it on. To her surprise, it

didn't even go half way around her neck. Maybe it was

supposed to be a bracelet. Nope. Too big. Karin was

stumped. She looked at the ends closer and saw they both

had sliding latches.

It hit her suddenly and she giggled. She pulled up her top

and hooked one latch to the gold ring on her right nipple.

She pulled the chain over to attach it to the other ring.

It didn't quite reach and she had to pull both nipples in

towards the middle. The latch slid securely closed over

the second ring. Her tits looked a little cross-eyed in

the mirror, but the effect on her nipples was incredible.

It was like an electric shock with every move, each breath.

She gave a little bounce and experienced a mild climax.

Pulling her top down over her cross-eyed tits, she waited

impatiently until Sandi got home. A happier Karin rushed

to Sandi's arms and kissed her when she came in the door.

"Well, 'Hi Honey I'm home' to you, too, lover," she

laughed.

"It's beautiful. The chain. Thank you."

"You like it?"

"Yes."

"Does it...?"

"Ooooohhhhh yyyeeesss!"

Sandi was silent. "I want some rings, too."

Now Karin was silent. "Sam. Sam can't help. Maybe Ben?"

"Ben? You won’t…" She stopped at the look of pain in her

friends eyes.

"I could help him, show him how...?"

"Do you think I should?"

"If you want it."

Sandi nodded. It was settled.

------------------------------------------------

The next Special Assignment was not only hosted by Karin

but directed by her, too. Sandi was already strung up in

the dungeon when Ben arrived. Her tits were to be the

focus of this session and they were prominently on display,

forced out and up by a special corset with high half cups

underneath her breasts.

Ben came in and whistled. He turned, expecting Karin to

leave, but she didn't leave. Instead she handed him a

sturdy whip.

"Her tits only, today."

He nodded silently and complied. Her tits were a rosy hue

when he was done with the whip.

Karin handed him another, stiffer whip. He looked at her

questioningly. She nodded curtly for him to proceed.

Again he complied. With vigor. If this was what his love

wanted, he would do it.

A third whip turned her breasts into two inflamed masses of

tissue. He turned to Karin. She handed him something

else, which he mistook as another whip.

"No. No more. I won't do it. And I won't let you,

either." He made a move to protect Sandi.

"It's not a whip, Ben. She wants you to put your mark on

her. Like my love did to me."

Karin brushed her blouse aside and exposed the tiny gold

ring.

Ben blushed at her nakedness and looked away. It was too

personal.

He took the piercer from her hand. His hand trembled

slightly as he hefted it, feeling its weight in his hand.

He took a deep breath and steeled himself. "Give me a

ring."

Karin handed him one.

He walked over and held up the ring so Sandi could see.

"Lady X, my love, is this what you want?"

The hooded head nodded 'Yes.'"

Ben held the piercer up to the erect nipple closest to him.

He didn't wait and terrorize her, but squeezed it quickly.

The scream could be heard clearly through the gag and the

hood. He gasped at the sounds he heard coming from her.

He paled at her pain. This was more than he wanted to do.

He slipped the gold ring through the fresh hole. He

glanced at Karin for support. She nodded.

He repeated the procedure on the other nipple. After

slipping the ring on her other nipple, he had to excuse

himself. He went out into the bathroom outside and threw

up. Karin waited patiently for him to get back. Sandi was

half-delirious and had not noticed his absence. Karin

would never tell her. But she thought it was touching, if

wimpy. Sam had not vomited, she thought proudly.

Ben slipped back in the dungeon quietly. Karin smiled at

him and indicated the dazed Lady X. He nodded his thanks.

"Is that all?"

"Not quite."

"Somehow, I didn't think so."

Karin explained what else was needed. Ben started to bolt

for the door.

"Ben!"

He turned.

"This was her idea, not mine."

He waited.

"Please, Ben. For her."

He nodded, reluctantly. "You better be telling me the

truth, or I swear I'll rip your tits off by those rings."

Karin held her hands out to him in a submissive gesture.

"I will stay by your side until you are convinced of her

happiness. You may bind me if you wish." She waited, her

hands held quietly in front of her, palms together.

Ben shook his head. He took the hot iron Karin had

prepared and placed a drop of solder, one on the split in

each ring, sealing them shut. He was crying as he did it.

They let down the newly ringed woman together. Karin

applied an alcohol wipe to both wounds to prevent

infection. Sandi lay recovering on the dungeon floor. She

looked at the two anxious faces peering down at her. She

touched the tips of her breasts lightly. She felt the

rings. A shudder ran through her body.

She took Ben's hands in hers and placed them lightly over

her tits. She emphatically nodded her head 'Yes'.

He looked at Karin, nodded and motioned for her to leave

them alone.

Before she left, she whispered to him, "Be gentle with

them, but don't ignore them, or she'll hate you. ...Good

luck, lover boy."

Chapter 16

Sandi's new promotion vaulted her into the city’s social

stratosphere. She hobnobbed with rich and famous people on

a regular basis now. Her date/escort on these occasions

was the young handsome Officer Ben Johnson, much to his

embarrassment. The evening gowns and dresses his boss wore

on these occasions showed way too much of her voluptuous

body for him not to notice her beautiful figure. He

confessed his troublesome thoughts to his silent love, Lady

X. He told her that he was beginning to have lusting

thoughts for his boss.

He didn't notice the correlation, but after each

confession, the clothing his boss wore was even more

revealing. The constant swirl of parties and dances was a

complete nightmare for him. But in the end, it was his

salvation.

It was the annual masquerade ball, a huge charity event,

that was the downfall of Lady X.

Sandi had arrived early, Ben later. He insisted that he

only needed to escort her, not be her transportation, as a

real date would be. It also limited the amount of time he

was alone with her, and he was to the point of not being

able to control himself. Sandi thought it was sweet that

he wanted to be true to his Lady X. But what she really

wanted was for him to ravish her, and she had never failed

yet.

When Ben entered the gala event, he dutifully scanned the

crowded floor for his boss. Suddenly, his heart stopped.

She was here. His Lady X. He would know that body

anywhere. All thoughts of finding his boss were gone. He

walk on air over to her. She was talking with some people

when he walk up.

She saw him and turned. "Why, here's Ben now. Ben, you

forgot your mask!" She smiled up at him with her eyes,

those eyes he had gazed into so often behind her leather

hood.

Dumbfounded, he mechanically slipped his mask to his face.

His boss was Lady X. He was positive, no mistake. But

why?..how? Ben had always thought fast on his feet. He

decided, in an instant, to go on the offensive.

He offered her an elegant bow. "Why, madam, I don't think

I have the pleasure of your acquaintance. Would you, by

chance, be the mysterious Lady X?"

The on-lookers laughed appreciatively at his wit, although

they didn't know how deep the shock had hit Captain

Billings.

She nodded numbly.

"Then lovely Lady X, may I have the pleasure of this

dance?"

Not giving her a chance to respond - and per chance to

refuse - he grasped her hand firmly and pulled/dragged her

to the dance floor. She didn't refuse, nor did she

respond. She was stunned.

Suddenly Sandi realized what it was. The mask! Of course,

the mask! She sagged in defeat. Her career was over. She

would loose it all. All her planning, all her sessions

with Ben, all her love. Lost!

She staggered. Ben, the gallant partner, caught her

gracefully under the arms and swept her to him in an

extravagant maneuver, still playing to the crowd. They

were still watching, always watching, smiling at the two

lovers.

That everyone knew they were lovers was common knowledge.

That everyone was wrong, but, in a way, right, was

irrelevant. Everyone was still watching.

"Come on, Cap'n, work with me!" he whispered. His use of

her title snapped her to her senses. She looked up at him

and gave him a weak smile. She did an elegant spin at his

command, and re-entered his open arms.

"It was the mask," she stated.

"Uh-huh," he said.

"What are we going to do?"

"We? I don't know about you, but I'm going to enjoy this

dance with my Captain, my partner, and wait impatiently for

my next Special Assignment. What are you going to do?"

"Oh, Ben. Ben. Ben. I love you so. I.."

"Sssshhhh. Not here. Don't blow it now, ma'am."

She clung to him, grabbing desperately at the lifeline she

had thrown him. The first dance moved into the second and

then a third. They danced all night, and never noticed the

approving, and envious, glances of the crowd.

That night Ben slept with his real love for the first time.

They made normal, passionate love. Karin heard the noise

in the next room and froze when she heard the screams of

BEN, BEN, BEN. She waited for the angry yelling, but none

came. An awful feeling came over her.

She peeked through the crack of the door and saw her friend

riding high in the saddle, sliding up and down on Ben's

solid prick. She closed the door quietly and smiled to

herself. Sandi was happy at last. She would work the

details out later.

It was also at one of those high-class social gatherings

that Sandi heard the first whispers of the upcoming annual

President's Ball. The mention of that event electrified

her. If she could find the event, she could find the

elusive Sam Adams. Her heart in her throat, she began

using all her investigative skills to ferret out the

information she needed. She succeeded.

---------------------------------------------

Abby was sitting at her desk when she visited by a Captain

Billings from the Police Commissioner's Office. A flash of

the badge proved the identity of the caller.

"The president is out of the office until next week,

Captain Billings."

"That's OK. I just need some information about a person

I'm trying to locate."

"Sure, anything I can do to help."

"Have you worked here long?"

"About 10 years."

"How long have you worked for the president?"

"The whole time."

Sandi looked at the young woman. She must have gone right

to the top in a hurry. "What can you tell me about the

President's Ball that's going on next week."

Abby paled. No one outside of a very small group knew

about the Ball. The policewoman's question scared her.

She stiffened visibly. "Is this official business?"

Sandi hesitated. "No," she confessed. She looked around

the open office. "Can we go somewhere and talk privately?"

Abby pushed a button on her phone to hold her calls.

"Follow me."

She led Sandi to a quiet conference room down the hall and

closed the door behind her. Sitting down, she motioned for

Sandi to take a seat.

Sandi continued. "A dear friend - my best friend - met a

man at the Ball several years ago and has been devastated

since. I would like to see if I could get the two of them

back together. If both parties agree, of course."

Abby grinned. Another broken heart story. It happened

every year. Which was why the men used aliases.

Sandi went on. "I'm trying to reach a man who used the

name 'Sam Adams.' I was hoping you could get in touch with

him."

Sandi had seen Abby's reaction to the mention of Sam's

name. Abby had reached up to touch the tip of her nipples

in a gesture similar to Karin's and her own since she had

gotten her nipple rings. "Eureka!" thought Sandi.

--------------------------------------------

The mention of Sam brought a twinge to Abby's pierced

nipples. She had met Sam just over 10 years ago - at the

President's Ball. She had agreed ahead of time to the

bondage and pain that followed, because she had been

attracted to the man and because she was young and reckless

and wanted to try it.

They had gone to the cabin in the mountains and she had

gotten her golden rings. But there had been no spark, no

chemistry, between them and, handsome and sexy as he was,

Abby would not marry without love. She had not minded the

pain, but had not repeated the visit to the cabin. He had

hired her immediately because he could trust her to tell

him the truth. She always had.

She had kept the rings, too. At least, until she got

engaged. She smiled to herself. When they were dating

prior to her engagement, her husband, Eric, had been beside

himself to feel her tits and to get her into bed. She

always said 'No'. She didn't want him to see the rings and

have to explain them. She would have told him the truth

and it would have killed him.

She even had to knee him in the groin once to cool him off.

Then she had immediately dropped to her knees and sucked

him off for the first time to make up for her kneeing him.

She giggled at the memory. Her poor baby was so confused

at her actions. She had continued to suck him at every

opportunity, still did, in fact, and he quit trying to

force her into bed. He still tried, but he respected her

when she declined. Getting a first-class blow job as a

refusal probably helped keep him interested.

Unintentionally playing hard to get accelerated his

proposal for marriage. When it came, she made him wait 24

hours for her answer. That made her even more mysterious

and intriguing to him.

She had gone into her boss' office early the next morning

and closed the door. She sat in the chair across from his

desk. He looked up smiling, and immediately came to sit

beside her. He was a very sensitive man and sensed

something was bothering her.

"I want to get married."

"Why, Abby, that's wonderful. It's Eric, right?"

She nodded her head.

"What's the problem?”

"I still have the rings you gave me."

"Oh, I see. Does Eric know?"

"He's never even seen them."

"Ah, I see better. And how can I help?"

"I need to ask you if I may take them off."

"Abby, I'm touched. Very touched. But, of course you may.

Your heart belongs to another now. I have no claim on

you."

Abby looked up at the handsome man. "Yes, you do. You

always will."

He leaned over and kissed her gently. Rising, he went

behind his desk and got a jeweler's tool to clip delicate

wires. He held them out to her.

She shook her head. "Would you do it?"

She opened her blouse and lifted her tits up to him. He

clipped first one ring and bent it slightly. It slipped

easily from the hole. He repeated the process on the other

ring.

When he finished he continued to stare at the lovely

breasts of his loyal secretary. Bending down, he placed a

chaste kiss on the very tip of each. Looking up, he kissed

away the tears slipping down her cheeks.

"Thank you, Abby. I will always cherish these and the

memories they symbolize."

He placed the rings carefully in a jewelry box and put it

in his pocket.

"God, I feel naked." She looked down at her bare tits,

unadorned with rings for the first time in several years.

"You almost are!"

"You know what I mean!" She giggled as she covered herself

back up.

She had told Eric 'Yes' that night and had dragged him to

bed. He couldn't believe her change in attitude or her

enormous appetite for sex. When he noticed her pierced,

but ringless, nipples, he went wild. Something about them

turned him on. Every time he saw, touched or thought about

those tiny little holes, he got very hard and fucked her

hard even harder. Even after they had been married for a

couple of years they still turned him on.

Abby was delighted. Eric assumed her pierced nipples were

a holdover from her wild college days and he never asked

her about them. She never told him differently. On their

first anniversary, he brought her a small silver heart.

For her left nipple. A heart for her heart

She made him solder it on himself. The poor baby was so

scared he would hurt her, he actually did. A little. The

pain made it just a little more special.

That night they fucked all night. Eric never got soft.

The next day he came home at lunch and they fucked again.

And then again that night. And the next lunch and so on.

For several weeks. After that, all she had to do was to

wear a tight top with no bra that showed the heart poking

through the fabric and Eric would screw her silly.

The next anniversary, she got him one. When he opened the

box and saw what it was, he paled visibly. Swallowing, he

said a weak 'Thank You' and tried to put it down.

Abby held up a piercing tool she had borrowed and gave him

a wicked grin.

"Oh, I'm so glad you like it. We can do it now!"

It took a half of a bottle of scotch, which she had also

thoughtfully purchased ahead of time, and much cajoling

before he bared his chest to the tool. She didn't waste

time, but plunged it through and through before he realized

what was going on.

When he saw the blood, and finally felt the pain, he

fainted dead away. But she was proud that he didn't

scream. She heated the soldering iron and sealed the heart

after she had looped it through the hole. He was still

passed out.

He found his ring as erotic as hers. He needed only to

touch it, or brush up against something to get hard. And

then he would fuck her hard. She loved it.

Several days later Eric came in visibly upset. He had been

playing basketball at the gym and was on the ‘skins’ team.

The tiny heart had caused a near riot. First the guys

razzed him. One guy got a fat lip when he went a little

too far and called him gay. They all knew Abby and all the

other wives and girlfriends, too.

Finally, he had had to explain about her ring and his.

This was his commitment to his wife, as he explained it.

Eric didn't understand why his wife started crying, but he

enjoyed what she did for him afterwards with her mouth.

And with her pussy and her asshole later that night. She

was a mad horny woman, suddenly.

Abby had received the first curious call a couple of days

later. One of the guy’s wives wanted to know if it was

true, did it hurt, could she see it....

Abby laughed as she remembered the calls. Each one of the

team’s wives or girlfriends had come over in turn, looked

and eventually ended up in bed with Abby. Nothing serious,

just good sex between girls. And all of them got pierced

and came back to show her. And ended up in bed again.

Some came back quite a few times.

Abby told Eric about all of them. It excited him almost as

much as the rings did. He told her when the next heart

showed up on the basketball court, and then the others.

The guys just grinned at her when they saw her now and

reflexively touched their own rings.

----------------------------------------

"Abby!"

Sandi's voice brought her back out of her trip down memory

lane. She blushed.

"Abby, do you know who Sam is?"

She nodded that she did.

"Could you ask him if he would agree to meet Karin

Saunders?"

"KARIN!?" Abby’s eyes were wide and she paled noticibly.

"Oh! Do you know her?"

"I, uh, I thought she was arrested for murder and was in

prison. That's what I told him."

"Someone else did it."

"Oh God. Oh shit! Damn. I really fucked up! He, Sam,

has been a miserable wreck since then, too. He hasn't

dated or even flirted. Some times I have to check his

breath with a mirror to see if he's alive. It's like he's

not here, but he is, you know?"

"I know exactly. No spark left, listless, half a person,

yada-yada-yada. Karin is the same way most of the time.

She thinks Sam abandon her."

"Oh, no! Never! She must have been special. Oh, Go, I

really messed up big time! But what can I do to help?"

Sandi and Abby grinned as they both realized at the same

time that they had all the pieces to a small, but difficult

puzzle. They immediately put their heads together to begin

planning a special reunion for the two forlorn lovers.

Hell itself couldn't have stopped these two female cupids

as they plotted to get their respective friends back

together.

Abby suddenly had several calls to make.

Sandi called Sally, Karin's secretary.

The plot had begun.

------------------------------------------

Karin was lunching today with her banker to discuss

preparations for expanding to the international market and

needed to confirm the letters of credit and the bank's

support of the move. Sally had set this meeting up with

the president of the bank himself, and Karin was nervous.

She was still uncomfortable around lots of money. Even if

it was hers.

She sat in the waiting room nervously tapping her foot.

She hadn't gotten around much after she started working.

New buildings and places unsettled her. And Sally’s

attitude today! She felt like she had been on inspection

before Sally would let her go. She had even asked her if

she had on clean underwear! What nerve!

The secretary buzzed the president. "The CEO of Saunders,

Inc. to see you, sir."

"Show him in, please, Abby."

The secretary smirked at the small joke she was playing on

her boss. She was going to love to see his face when he

saw this beautiful young woman walk into his office instead

of an old man. "This way, please."

She led Karin down to a huge door at the end of the

hallway. She pushed open the door and walked in, shielding

Karin from the man. She was just getting ready to

introduce them when he froze. Karin had stepped into full

view and his face looked like he had seen a ghost. He

stood, the blood draining from his face, his mouth working

but no sound coming out.

She heard a small strangled cry behind her. Karin had seen

her boss and stopped short. She had reflexively raised up

her hand to caress the tips of her breasts. And she had

called out “Sam,” except it came out stangled.

"Oh, to be a fly on the wall right now!," Abby wished. It

didn't come true, of course. Sensing retreat was the best

thing to do, she silently closed the door securely and

walked down the hall to her desk. She had a million things

to do. Add another name to the guest list, cancel the rest

of the appointments for ‘His Nibs’ but first she had to

make that call to Jacki's Boutique. She dialed the stylish

boutique on the first floor of the building.

"Jacki, this is Abby in the bank. I need something special

for the Ball tonight. ... No, not for me, once was enough.

... Oh, she's about 6 foot tall. ... Believe me, you'll

have to send up your best stuff. This lady will outshine

anything you have in the store. Perfect face, perfect

body. ... The whole works, dress, necklace, shoes. ... Size

7 or 8. ... I trust you, Jacki. ... Oh, and throw in a pair

of hiking boots and pair of shorts and a top. I have a

feeling they'll be going to the cabin. ...Yeah, first time

in a year! ... No, no underwear. I don't think she's going

to need it. ... Well, they're in conference now, so around

6:00? ... Yeah, that kind of 'conference'. ... What? Oh,

charge it to Peter Jones. He'll never notice."

------------------------------------------

Karin looked down at the name plate on the desk. "You're

Peter Jones. I never knew your name."

He paled. "Karin…" he started.

"You didn't call."

"I tried. They said Bill, your husband, was dead –

murdered. They said you were in prison. I was away in

Hong Kong and my secretary tried to get in touch with you

the next day. The last I heard was that you were arrested

for his murder. I should have tried harder, but I couldn’t

get away, get back. I have been miserable without you. I

didn't know K. Saunders was you. By the way, this is very

impressive!," he said, lifting up the sheaf of research

papers on his desk.

She stood rooted to the spot. Tears streamed down her

face. She had found him. But would he still want her?

"Karin, come here."

She brightened, smiling through her tears. She walked over

to stand in front of him. He looked down at her as if

considering something. He leaned over to the intercom and

pushed button. "Abby, cancel the rest of my day."

"I already have, sir."

Peter walked over to the double doors and locked them. He

crossed back to Karin and took her in his arms. They

kissed deeply. As they kissed she quietly unbuttoned her

blouse. She pulled the edges back to expose her bare

breasts to his starched shirt and tucked it in her waist

band to keep it out of the way. When she was done she

threw her arms around his neck. She hung on like a

drowning person to a life ring. She looked up into his

eyes and smiled through her tears.

"I love you, Peter Jones/ Sam Adams. I want to be with

you."

"Karin, do you remember the night we met? The President's

Ball?"

"Yes."

"It's tonight. Would you like to go? I'm the host member

this year. Since I was gone for the last one, they

rescheduled me."

His fingers found her bare breasts and he smiled down at

her. A shiver ran through her as he fingered the gold

rings. He pulled gently on them, stretching her tits as

they talked. He felt the chain connecting them and pulled

back to look at it. He nodded his approval as he tugged it

lightly.

"Ooohhh Sssam. With you?"

"Yes and no."

"What do you - OOOHHHHH - mean?"

"You're a CEO now. You'll have to go as a member, not a

date."

"Oh. OOOOHHHH YYEESS!"

She thought about it for a while during the erotic

stimulation of her nipples.

"Can a member dance with the host?"

"It hasn't happened up until now, but there isn't a rule

against it"

She tightened her grip around his neck. He twisted the

tips of her tits and she panted into his collar. Business

was forgotten.

"What are the rules?," she asked when she caught her

breath.

He explained them all, even the ones about the prize for

the best looking date and the percentage for the host for

all contract signed at the ball.

"Sounds pretty sexist to me." But she had immediately

thought of Sandi. Shit, would the rats run for cover if

she brought a cop as a date! And there was the new girl in

Finance that had caught her eye. She could win a prize,

with a little help. Might be fun to get her into the

dungeon afterwards, too....

She paused to think a minute and made a decision. "I'm in,

but the first man who calls me a lesbian for trying to win

the prize will be eating his balls for breakfast. Let

everyone know that, OK?"

"Yes, Ma'am!"

"Any other rules?"

"No, Ma'am!"

She punched him playfully and then let her hands wander to

his stiff prick.

"Can I be naughty tonight?"

"No. It wouldn't be appropriate as a member. Besides, I'd

- Ooohhh, yes! -get jealous."

She giggled.

"Who shall I be?"

"How about Geraldine Ferraro?, the Democratic VP nomination

a while ago. She made it the farthest."

" 'Gerri'. I like it."

She was quiet, but her hands were working at breakneck

speed.

"Will 'Sam' be there?"

"Yes. OOHH Damn, that's good!"

"Can Sam and Gerri go to the cabin?"

"As soon as the ball is over, but it's a long way up there.

I don't know that Sam could wait."

"That's OK. I've got a, uh, dungeon in my basement."

He pulled back to look at her with a raised eyebrow. “Well

equipped?”

“Not as well equipped as you are, but it’s adequate.”

“Close?”

“Five minutes.”

"Then ‘Sam’ and ‘Gerri’ will go there first, then the

cabin."

"Will he spank her.?'

"Yes."

"Hard?"

"Yes."

"Will he tie her up?"

"Yes."

"Tight?"

"Yes."

"The way she likes?"

"Yes."

"Will he fuck her?"

"Yes, Ma’am!."

"Hard?"

"Yes."

"Long?"

"Yes."

" and often?"

"Yes. And, before she asks any more questions, in any

orifice she wants."

In a tiny little girl voice that cried out for arms to wrap

her up she ask:

"Can Peter fuck Karin now?"

"Yes," he whispered quietly.

She sobbed her relief. Her voice was still a whisper in

his ear.

"I haven’t – How do you – What orifice do you want, Peter?

"

"All of them."

"They're yours, dearest. Only yours."

He grinned at her as they slid to the floor in each other's

tight embrace, oblivious to the world around them.

=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-=-

End of chapter End of story
I hope you enjoyed it. :)

All my published works are archived and can be read or

downloaded free at

http://www.asstr.org/pub/authors/NightShade/

Comments to: i_m_nightshade@hotmail.com